MY readers have
opportunities of judging for themselves whether the influences and tendencies
which I distrusted in America had any existence but in my imagination. They can
examine for themselves whether there has been anything in the public career of
that country since, at home or abroad, which suggests that those influences and
tendencies really did exist. As they find the fact, they will judge me. If they
discern any evidences of wrong-going, in any direction that I have indicated,
they will acknowledge that I had reason in what I wrote. If they discern no
such thing, they will consider me altogether mistaken--but not wilfully.
Prejudiced I am not,
and never have been, otherwise than in favour of the United States. I have many
friends in America, I feel a grateful interest in the country, I hope and
believe it will successfully work out a problem of the highest importance to
the whole human race. To represent me as viewing AMERICA with ill-nature,
coldness, or animosity, is merely to do a very foolish thing, which is always a
very easy one.
CONTENTS: AMERICAN NOTES CHAP. PAGE
I. GOING AWAY. 1
II. THE PASSAGE OUT. 11
III. BOSTON. 28
IV. AN AMERICAN
RAILROAD. LOWELL AND ITS FACTORY SYSTEM. 71
V. WORCESTER. THE
CONNECTICUT RIVER. HARTFORD. NEW HAVEN TO NEW YORK. 81
VI. NEW YORK. 91
VII. PHILADELPHIA, AND
ITS SOLITARY PRISON. 112
VIII. WASHINGTON. THE
LEGISLATURE. AND THE PRESIDENT'S HOUSE. 130
IX. A NIGHT STEAMER ON
THE POTOMAC RIVER. VIRGINIA ROAD AND A BLACK DRIVER. RICHMOND. BALTIMORE. THE
HARRISBURG MAIL, AND A GLIMPSE OF THE CITY. A CANAL BOAT. 149
X. SOME FURTHER ACCOUNT
OF THE CANAL BOAT, ITS DOMESTIC ECONOMY, AND ITS PASSENGERS. JOURNEY TO PITTSBURG
ACROSS THE ALLEGHANY MOUNTAINS. PITTSBURG. 169
XI. FROM PITTSBURG TO
CINCINNATI IN A WESTERN STEAMBOAT. CINCINNATI. 182
XII. FROM CINCINNATI TO
LOUISVILLE IN ANOTHER WESTERN STEAMBOAT; AND FROM LOUISVILLE TO ST. LOUIS IN
ANOTHER. ST. LOUIS 193
XIII. A JAUNT TO THE
LOOKING-GLASS PRAIRIE AND BACK. 206
XIV. RETURN TO
CINCINNATI. A STAGE-COACH RIDE FROM THAT CITY TO COLUMBUS, AND THENCE TO
SANDUSKY. SO, BY LAKE ERIE, TO THE FALLS OF NIAGARA. 216
XV. IN CANADA: TORONTO;
KINGSTON; MONTREAL; QUEBEC; ST. JOHN'S. IN THE UNITED STATES AGAIN: LEBANON;
THE SHAKER VILLAGE; AND WEST POINT. 235
XVI. THE PASSAGE HOME.
256
XVII. SLAVERY. 266
XVIII. CONCLUDING
REMARKS. 285
POSTSCRIPT. 296
I SHALL never forget
the one-fourth serious and three-fourths comical astonishment with which, on
the morning of the third of January, eighteen-hundred-and-forty-two, I opened
the door of, and put my head into, a "state-room" on board the Britannia
steam-packet, twelve hundred tons burden per register, bound for Halifax and
Boston, and carrying her Majesty's mails.
That this state-room
had been specially engaged for "Charles Dickens, Esquire, and Lady,
"was rendered sufficiently clear even to my scared intellect by a very
small manuscript, announcing the fact, which was pinned on a very flat quilt,
covering a very thin mattress, spread like a surgical plaster on a most
inaccessible shelf. But that this was the state-room concerning which Charles
Dickens, Esquire, and Lady, had held daily and nightly conferences for at least
four months preceding: that this could by any possibility be that small snug
chamber of the imagination, which Charles Dickens, Esquire, with the spirit of
prophecy strung upon him, had always foretold would contain at least one little
sofa, and which his lady, with a modest yet most magnificent sense of its
limited dimensions, had from the first opined would not hold more than two
enormous portmanteaus in some odd corner out of sight (portmanteaus which could
now no more be got in at the door, not to say stowed away, than a giraffe could
be persuaded or forced into a flower-pot): that this utterly impracticable,
thoroughly hopeless, and profoundly preposterous box had the remotest reference
to, or connection with, those chaste and pretty, not to say gorgeous little
bowers, sketched by a masterly hand, in the highly varnished lithographic plan
hanging up in the agent's counting-house in the city of London: that this room
of state, in short, could be any thing but a pleasant fiction and cheerful jest
of the captain' s, invented and put in practice for the better relish and
enjoyment of the real state-room presently to be disclosed:--these were truths
which I really could not, for the moment, bring my mind at all to bear upon or
comprehend. And I sat down upon a kind of horsehair slab, or perch, of which
there were two within; and looked, without any expression of countenance
whatever, at some friends who had come on board with us, and who were crushing
their faces into all manner of shapes by endeavouring to squeeze them through
the small doorway.
We had experienced a
pretty smart shock before coming below, which, but that we were the most
sanguine people living, might have prepared us for the worst. The imaginative
artist to whom I have already made allusion has depicted, in the same great
work, a chamber of almost interminable perspective, furnished, as Mr. Robins
would say, in a style of more than Eastern splendour, and filled (but not inconveniently
so) with groups of ladies and gentlemen, in the very highest state of enjoyment
and vivacity. Before descending into the bowels of the ship, we had passed from
the deck into a long narrow apartment, not unlike a gigantic hearse with
windows in the sides; having at the upper end a melancholy stove, at which
three or four chilly stewards were warming their hands; while on either side,
extending down its whole dreary length, was a long, long table, over each of
which a rack, fixed to the low roof, and stuck full of drinking-glasses and
cruet-stands, hinted dismally at rolling seas and heavy weather. I had not at
that time seen the ideal presentment of this chamber which has since gratified
me so much, but I observed that one of our friends, who had made the
arrangements for our voyage, turned pale on entering, retreated on the friend
behind him, smote his forehead involuntarily, and said below his breath,
"Impossible! it cannot be!" or words to that effect. He recovered
himself, however, by a great effort, and, after a preparatory cough or two,
cried, with a ghastly smile which is still before me, looking at the same time
round the walls, "Ha! the breakfast-room, steward, eh?" We all
foresaw what the answer must be: we knew the agony he suffered. He had often
spoken of the saloon; had taken in and lived upon the pictorial idea; had
usually given us to understand, at home, that to form a just conception of it,
it would be necessary to multiply the size and furniture of an ordinary
drawing-room by seven, and then fall short of the reality. When the man in
reply avowed tho truth: the blunt, remorseless, naked truth: "This is the
saloon, sir"--he actually reeled beneath the blow.
In persons who were so
soon to part, and interpose between their else daily communication the
formidable barrier of many thousand miles of stormy space, and who were for
that reason anxious to cast no other cloud, not even the passing shadow of a
moment's disappointment or discomfiture, upon the short interval of happy
companionship that yet remained to them--in persons so situated, the natural
transition from these first surprises was obviously into peals of hearty
laughter; and I can report that I, for one, being still seated upon the slab or
perch before mentioned, roared outright until the vessel rang again. Thus, in
less than two minutes after coming upon it for the first time, we all by common
consent agreed that this state-room was the pleasantest and most facetious and
capital contrivance possible, and that to have had it one inch larger would
have been quite a disagreeable and deplorable state of things. And with this;
and with showing how--by very nearly closing the door, and twining in and out
like serpents, and by counting the little washing slab as standing-room--we could
manage to insinuate four people into it, all at one time; and entreating each
other to observe how very airy it was (in dock), and how there was a beautiful
port-hole which could be kept open all day (weather permitting), and how there
was quite a large bull's-eye just over the looking-glass, which would render
shaving a perfectly easy and delightful process (when the ship didn't roll too
much); we arrived, at last, at the unanimous conclusion that it was rather
spacious than otherwise: though I do verily believe that, deducting the two
berths, one above the other, than which nothing smaller for sleeping in was
ever made except coffins, it was no bigger than one of those hackney cabriolets
which have the door behind, and shoot their fares out like sacks of coals upon
the pavement.
Having settled this
point to the perfect satisfaction of all parties, concerned or unconcerned, we
sat down round the fire in the ladies' cabin--just to try the effect. It was
rather dark, certainly; but somebody said, "Of course it would be light at
sea," a proposition to which we all assented; echoing "Of course, of
course;" though it would be exceedingly difficult to say why we thought
so. I remember, too, when we had discovered and exhausted another topic of consolation
in the circumstance of this ladies' cabin adjoining our state-room, and the
consequently immense feasibility of sitting there at all times and seasons, and
had fallen into a momentary silence, leaning our faces on our hands and looking
at the fire, one of our party said, with the solemn air of a man who had made a
discovery, "What a relish mulled claret will have down here!" which
appeared to strike us all most forcibly; as though there were something spicy
and high-flavoured in cabins, which essentially improved that composition, and
rendered it quite incapable of perfection anywhere else.
There was a stewardess,
too, actively engaged in producing clean sheets and table-cloths from the very
entrails of the sofas, and from unexpected lockers, of such artful mechanism
that it made one's head ache to see them opened one after another, and rendered
it quite a distracting circumstance to follow her proceedings, and to find that
every nook and corner and individual piece of furniture was something else
besides what it pretended to be, and was a mere trap and deception and place of
secret stowage, whose ostensible purpose was its least useful one. God bless
that stewardess for her piously fraudulent account of January voyages! God
bless her for her clear recollection of the companion passage of last year,
when nobody was ill, and everybody danced from morning till night, and it was
"a run" of twelve days, and a piece of the purest frolic, and
delight, and jollity! All happiness be with her for her bright face and her pleasant
Scotch tongue, which had sounds of old Home in it for my fellow-traveller; and
for her predictions of fair winds and fine weather (all wrong, or I shouldn't
be half so fond of her); and for the ten thousand small fragments of genuine
womanly tact by which, without piecing them elaborately together, and patching
them up into shape and form and case and pointed application, she nevertheless
did plainly show that all young mothers on one side of the Atlantic were near
and close at hand to their little children left upon the other; and that what
seemed to the uninitiated a serious journey, was, to those who were in the
secret, a mere frolic, to be sung about and whistled at! Light be her heart,
and gay her merry eyes, for years!
The state-room had
grown pretty fast; but by this time it had expanded into something quite bulky,
and almost boasted a bay-window to view the sea from. So we went upon deck
again in high spirits; and there everything was in such a state of bustle and
active preparation, that the blood quickened its pace, and whirled through
one's veins on that clear frosty morning with involuntary mirthfulness. For
every gallant ship was riding slowly up and down, and every little boat was
plashing [?] noisily in the water; and knots of people stood upon the wharf,
gazing with a kind of "dread delight" on the far-famed fast American
steamer; and one party of men were "taking in the milk," or, in other
words, getting the cow on board; and another were filling the ice-houses to the
very throat with fresh provisions; with butcher's meat and garden stuff, pale
sucking-pigs, calves' heads in scores, beef, veal, and pork, and poultry out of
all proportion; and others were coiling ropes, and busy with oakum yarns; and
others were lowering heavy packages into the hold; and the purser's head was
barely visible as it loomed in a state of exquisite perplexity from the midst
of a vast pile of passengers' luggage; and there seemed to be nothing going on
anywhere, or uppermost in the mind of anybody, but preparations for this mighty
voyage. This, with the bright cold sun, the bracing air, the crisply-curling
water, the thin white crust of morning ice upon the decks which crackled with a
sharp and cheerful sound beneath the lightest tread, was irresistible. And when,
again upon the shore, we turned and saw from the vessel's mast her name
signalled in flags of joyous colours, and fluttering by their side the
beautiful American banner with its stars and stripes,--the long three thousand
miles and more, and, longer still, the six whole months of absence, so dwindled
and faded that the ship had gone out and come home again, and it was broad
spring already in the Coburg Dock at Liverpool.
I have not inquired
among my medical acquaintance whether Turtle, and cold Punch, with Hock,
Champagne, and Claret, and all the slight et caetera usually included in an
unlimited order for a good dinner--especially when it is left to the liberal
construction of my faultless friend, Mr. Radley of the Adelphi Hotel--are
peculiarly calculated to suffer a sea-change; or whether a plain mutton chop,
and a glass or two of sherry, would be less likely of conversion into foreign
and disconcerting material. My own opinion is, that whether one is discreet or
indiscreet in these particulars, on the eve of a sea voyage, is a matter of
little consequence; and that, to use a common phrase, "it comes to very
much the same thing in the end." Be this as it may, I know that the dinner
of that day was undeniably perfect; that it comprehended all these items, and a
great many more; and that we all did ample justice to it. And I know, too,
that, bating a certain tacit avoidance of any allusion to to-morrow; such as
may be supposed to prevail between delicate-minded turnkeys and a sensitive
prisoner who is to be hanged next morning; we got on very well, and, all things
considered, were merry enough.
When the morning--the
morning--came, and we met at breakfast, it was curious to see how eager we all
were to prevent a moment's pause in the conversation, and how astoundingly gay
everybody was: the forced spirits of each member of the little party having as
much likeness to his natural mirth, as hothouse peas at five guineas the quart
resemble in flavour the growth of the dews, and air, and rain of Heaven. But as
one o'clock, the hour for going aboard, drew near, this volubility dwindled
away by little and little, despite the most persevering efforts to the
contrary, until at last, the matter being now quite desperate, we threw off all
disguise; openly speculated upon where we should be this time to-morrow, this
time next day, and so forth; and intrusted a vast number of messages to those
who intended returning to town that night, which were to be delivered at home
and elsewhere, without fail, within the very shortest possible space of time
after the arrival of the railway train at Euston Square. And commissions and
remembrances do so crowd upon one at such a time, that we were still busied
with this employment when we found ourselves fused, as it were into a dense conglomeration
of passengers and passengers' friends and passengers' luggage, all jumbled
together on the deck of a small steamboat, and panting and snorting off to the
packet, which had worked out of dock yesterday afternoon, and was now lying at
her moorings in the river.
And there she is! all
eyes are turned to where she lies, dimly discernible through the gathering fog
of the early winter afternoon; every finger is pointed in the same direction;
and murmurs of interest and admiration--as "How beautiful she looks!"
"How trim she is!"--are heard on every side. Even the lazy gentleman
with his hat on one side and his hands in his pockets, who has dispensed so
much consolation by inquiring with a yawn of another gentleman whether he is
"going across"--as if it were a ferry--even he condescends to look
that way, and nod his head, as who should say, "No mistake about
that:" and not even the sage Lord Burleigh in his nod included half so
much as this lazy gentleman of might who has made the passage (as everybody on
board has found out already; it's impossible to say how) thirteen times without
a single accident! There is another passenger very much wrapped up, who has
been frowned down by the rest, and morally trampled upon and crushed, for
presuming to inquire with a timid interest how long it is since the poor
President went down. He is standing close to the lazy gentleman, and says with
a faint smile that he believes She is a very strong Ship; to which the lazy
gentleman, looking first in his questioner's eye and then very hard in the
wind's, answers unexpectedly and ominously, that She need be. Upon this the
lazy gentleman instantly falls very low in the popular estimation, and the
passengers, with looks of defiance, whisper to each other that he is an ass and
an impostor, and clearly don't know anything at all about it.
But we are made fast
alongside the packet, whose huge red funnel is smoking bravely, giving rich
promise of serious intentions. Packing-cases, portmanteaus, carpet bags, and
boxes are already passed from hand to hand, and hauled on board with breathless
rapidity. The officers, smartly dressed, are at the gangway, handing the
passengers up the side, and hurrying the men. In five minutes' time the little
steamer is utterly deserted, and the packet is beset and overrun by its late
freight, who instantly pervade the whole ship, and are to be met with by the
dozen in every nook and corner: swarming down below with their own baggage, and
stumbling over other people's; disposing themselves comfortably in wrong
cabins, and creating a most horrible confusion by having to turn out again;
madly bent upon opening locked doors, and on forcing a passage into all kinds
of out-of-the-way places where there is no thoroughfare; sending wild stewards,
with elfin hair, to and fro upon the breezy decks on unintelligible errands,
impossible of execution; and, in short, creating the most extraordinary and
bewildering tumult. In the midst of all this, the lazy gentleman, who seems to
have no luggage of any kind--not so much as a friend even--lounges up and down
the hurricane deck, coolly puffing a cigar; and, as this unconcerned demeanour
again exalts him in the opinion of those who have leisure to observe his
proceedings, every time he looks up at the masts, or down at the decks, or over
the side, they look there too, as wondering whether he sees anything wrong
anywhere, and hoping that, in case he should, he will have the goodness to
mention it.
What have we here? The
captain's boat! and yonder the captain himself. Now, by all our hopes and
wishes, the very man he ought to be! A well-made, tight-built, dapper little
fellow; with a ruddy face, which is a letter of invitation to shake him by both
hands at once; and with a clear blue, honest eye, that it does one good to see
one's sparkling image in. "Ring the bell!" "Ding, ding,
ding!" the very bell is in a hurry. "Now for the shore--who's for the
shore?"--"These gentlemen, I am sorry to say." They are away,
and never said Good-bye. Ah! now they wave it from the little boat.
"Good-bye! Good-bye!" Three cheers from them; three more from us;
three more from them; and they are gone.
To and fro, to and fro,
to and fro again a hundred times! This waiting for the latest mail-bags is
worse than all. If we could have gone off in the midst of that last burst, we
should have started triumphantly: but to lie here, two hours and more, in the
damp fog, neither staying at home nor going abroad, is letting one gradually
down into the very depths of dulness and low spirits A speck in the mist, at
last! That's something. It is the boat we wait for! That's more to the purpose.
The captain appears on the paddle-box with his speaking trumpet; the officers
take their stations; all hands are on tho alert; the flagging hopes of the
passengers revive; the cooks pause in their savoury work, and look out with
faces full of interest. The boat comes alongside; the bags are dragged in
anyhow, and flung down for the moment anywhere. Three cheers more: and, as the
first one rings upon our ears, the vessel throbs like a strong giant that has
just received the breath of life; the two great wheels turn fiercely round for
the first time; and the noble ship, with wind and tide astern, breaks proudly
through the lashed and foaming water.
We all dined together
that day; and a rather formidable party we were: no fewer than eighty-six
strong. The vessel being pretty deep in the water, with all her coals on board
and so many passengers, and the weather being calm and quiet, there was but
little motion; so that before the dinner was half over, even those passengers
who were most distrustful of themselves plucked up amazingly; and those who in
the morning had returned to the universal question, "Are you a good
sailor?" a very decided negative, now either parried the inquiry with the
evasive reply, "Oh! I suppose I'm no worse than anybody else;" or,
reckless of all moral obligations, answered boldly, "Yes:" and with
some irritation too, as though they would add, "I should like to know what
you see in me, sir, particularly, to justify suspicion!"
Notwithstanding this
high tone of courage and confidence, I could not but observe that very few
remained long over their wine; and that everybody had an unusual love of the
open air; and that the favourite and most coveted seats were invariably those
nearest to the door. The tea-table, too, was by no means as well attended as
the dinner-table; and there was less whist-playing than might have been
expected. Still, with the exception of one lady, who had retired with some
precipitation at dinner-time, immediately after being assisted to the finest
cut of a very yellow boiled leg of mutton with very green capers, there were no
invalids as yet; and walking, and smoking, and drinking of brandy-and-water (but
always in the open air), went on with unabated spirit until eleven o'clock, or
thereabouts, when "turning in"--no sailor of seven hours' experience
talks of going to bed--became the order of the night. The perpetual tramp of
boot-heels on the decks gave place to a heavy silence, and the whole human
freight was stowed away below, excepting a very few stragglers like myself, who
were probably, like me, afraid to go there.
To one unaccustomed to
such scenes, this is a very striking time on shipboard. Afterwards, and when
its novelty had long worn off, it never ceased to have a peculiar interest and
charm for me. The gloom through which the great black mass holds its direct and
certain course; the rushing water, plainly heard, but dimly seen; the broad, white,
glistening track that follows in the vessel's wake; the men on the look-out
forward, who would be scarcely visible against the dark sky, but for their
blotting out some score of glistening stars; the helmsman at the wheel, with
the illuminated card before him, shining, a speck of light amidst the darkness,
like something sentient and of Divine intelligence; the melancholy sighing of
the wind through block, and rope, and chain; the gleaming forth of light from
every crevice, nook, and tiny piece of glass about the decks, as though the
ship were filled with fire in hiding, ready to burst through any outlet, wild
with its resistless power of death and ruin. At first, too, and even when the
hour, and all the objects it exalts, have come to be familiar, it is difficult,
alone and thoughtful, to hold them to their proper shapes and forms. They
change with the wandering fancy; assume the semblance of things left far away;
put on the well-remembered aspect of favourite places dearly loved; and even
people them with shadows. Streets, houses, rooms; figures so like their usual
occupants, that they have startled me by their reality, which far exceeded, as
it seemed to me, all power of mine to conjure up the absent; have, many and
many a time, at such an hour, grown suddenly out of objects with whose real
look, and use, and purpose I was as well acquainted as with my own two hands.
My own two hands, and feet likewise, being very cold, however, on this
particular occasion, I crept below at midnight. It was not exactly comfortable
below. It was decidedly close; and it was impossible to be unconscious of the
presence of that extraordinary compound of strange smells, which is to be found
nowhere but on board ship, and which is such a subtle perfume that it seems to
enter at every pore of the skin, and whisper of the hold. Two passengers' wives
(one of them my own) lay already in silent agonies on the sofa; and one lady's
maid (my lady's) was a mere bundle on the floor, execrating her destiny, and
pounding her curl-papers among the stray boxes. Everything sloped the wrong
way; which in itself was an aggravation scarcely to be borne. I had left the
door open, a moment before, in the bosom of a gentle declivity, and, when I
turned to shut it, it was on the summit of a lofty eminence. Now every plank
and timber creaked, as if the ship were made of wicker-work; and now crackled
like an enormous fire of the driest possible twigs. There was nothing for it
but bed; so I went to bed.
It was pretty much the
same for the next two days, with a tolerably fair wind and dry weather. I read
in bed (but to this hour I don't know what) a good deal; and reeled on deck a
little; drank cold brandy-and-water with an unspeakable disgust, and ate hard
biscuit perseveringly: not ill, but going to be.
It is the third
morning. I am awakened out of my sleep by a dismal shriek from my wife, who
demands to know whether there's any danger. I rouse myself, and look out of
bed. The water jug is plunging and leaping like a lively dolphin; all the
smaller articles are afloat, except my shoes, which are stranded on a carpet
bag, high and dry, like a couple of coal-barges. Suddenly I see them spring
into the air, and behold the looking-glass, which is nailed to the wall,
sticking fast upon the ceiling. At the same time the door entirely disappears,
and a new one is opened in the floor. Then I begin to comprehend that the
state-room is standing on its head.
Before it is possible
to make any arrangement at all compatible with this novel state of things, the
ship rights. Before one can say "Thank Heaven!" she wrongs again.
Before one can cry she is wrong, she seems to have started forward, and to be a
creature actively running of its own accord, with broken knees and failing
legs, through every variety of hole and pitfall, and stumbling constantly.
Before one can so much as wonder, she takes a high leap into the air. Before
she has well done that, she takes a deep dive into the water. Before she has
gained the surface, she throws a summerset. The instant she is on her legs, she
rushes backward. And so she goes on staggering, heaving, wrestling, leaping,
diving, jumping, pitching, throbbing, rolling, and rocking: and going through
all these movements, sometimes by turns, and sometimes all together: until one
feels disposed to roar for mercy.
A steward passes.
"Steward!" "Sir?" "What is the matter? what do you
call this?" "Rather a heavy sea on, sir, and a head wind."
A head wind! Imagine a
human face upon the vessel's prow, with fifteen thousand Samsons in one bent
upon driving her back, and hitting her exactly between the eyes whenever she
attempts to advance an inch. Imagine the ship herself, with every pulse and
artery of her huge body swollen and bursting under this maltreatment, sworn to
go on or die. Imagine the wind howling, the sea roaring, the rain beating: all
in furious array against her. Picture the sky both dark and wild, and the
clouds, in fearful sympathy with the waves, making another ocean in the air.
Add to all this the clattering on deck and down below the tread of hurried
feet; the loud hoarse shouts of seamen; the gurgling in and out of water
through the scuppers; with every now and then the striking of a heavy sea upon
the planks above, with the deep, dead, heavy sound of thunder heard within a vault;
and there is the head wind of that January morning.
I say nothing of what
may be called the domestic noises of the ship: such as the breaking of glass
and crockery, the tumbling down of stewards, the gambols, overhead, of loose
casks and truant dozens of bottled porter, and the very remarkable and far from
exhilarating sounds raised in their various state-rooms by the seventy
passengers who were too ill to get up to breakfast. I say nothing of them: for
although I lay listening to this concert for three or four days, I don't think
I heard it for more than a quarter of a minute, at the expiration of which
term, I lay down again, excessively sea-sick.
Not sea-sick, be it
understood, in the ordinary acceptation of the term: I wish I had been: but in a
form which I have never seen or heard described, though I have no doubt it is
very common. I lay there, all the day long, quite coolly and contentedly; with
no sense of weariness, with no desire to get up, or get better, or take the
air; with no curiosity, or care, or regret, of any sort or degree, saving that
I think I can remember, in this universal indifference, having a kind of lazy
joy--of fiendish delight, if anything so lethargic can be dignified with the
title--in the fact of my wife being too ill to talk to me. If I may be allowed
to illustrate my state of mind by such an example, I should say that I was
exactly in the condition of the elder Mr. Willet, after the incursion of the
rioters into his bar at Chigwell. Nothing would have surprised me. If, in the
momentary illumination of any ray of intelligence that may have come upon me in
the way of thoughts of Home, a goblin postman, with a scarlet coat and bell,
had come into that little kennel before me, broad awake, in broad day, and,
apologising for being damp through walking in the sea, had handed me a letter,
directed to myself, in familiar characters, I am certain I should not have felt
one atom of astonishment: I should have been perfectly satisfied. If Neptune
himself had walked in, with a toasted shark on his trident, I should have
looked upon the event as one of the very commonest every-day occurrences.
Once--once--I found
myself on deck. I don't know how I got there, or what possessed me to go there,
but there I was; and completely dressed too, with a huge pea-coat on, and a
pair of boots such as no weak man in his senses could ever have got into. I
found myself standing, when a gleam of consciousness came upon me, holding on
to something. I don't know what. I think it was the boatswain: or it may have
been the pump: or possibly the cow. I can't say how long I had been there;
whether a day or a minute. I recollect trying to think about something (about
anything in the whole wide world, I was not particular) without the smallest
effect. I could not even make out which was the sea, and which the sky; for the
horizon seemed drunk, and was flying wildly about in all directions. Even in
that incapable state, however, I recognised the lazy gentleman standing before
me: nautically clad in a suit of shaggy blue, with an oil-skin hat. But I was
too imbecile, although I knew it to be he, to separate him from his dress; and
tried to call him, I remember, Pilot. After another interval of total
unconsciousness, I found he had gone, and recognised another figure in its
place. It seemed to wave and fluctuate before me as though I saw it reflected
in an unsteady looking-glass; but I knew it for the captain; and such was the
cheerful influence of his face, that I tried to smile: yes, even then I tried
to smile. I saw by his gestures that he addressed me; but it was a long time
before I could make out that he remonstrated against my standing up to my knees
in water--as I was; of course I don't know why. I tried to thank him, but
couldn't. I could only point to my boots--or wherever I supposed my boots to
be--and say in a plaintive voice, "Cork soles:" at the same time
endeavouring, I am told, to sit down in the pool. Finding that I was quite
insensible, and for the time a maniac, he humanely conducted me below.
There I remained until
I got better: suffering, whenever I was recommended to eat anything, an amount
of anguish only second to that which is said to be endured by the apparently
drowned, in the process of restoration to life. One gentleman on board had a letter
of introduction to me from a mutual friend in London. He sent it below with his
card, on the morning of the head wind; and I was long troubled with the idea
that he might be up, and well, and a hundred times a day expecting me to call
upon him in the saloon. I imagined him one of those cast-iron images--I will
not call them men--who ask, with red faces and lusty voices, what sea-sickness
means, and whether it really is as bad as it is represented to be. This was
very torturing indeed; and I don't think I ever felt such perfect gratification
and gratitude of heart as I did when I heard from the ship's doctor that he had
been obliged to put a large mustard poultice on this very gentleman's stomach.
I date my recovery from the receipt of that intelligence.
It was materially
assisted though, I have no doubt, by a heavy gale of wind, which came slowly up
at sunset, when we were about ten days out, and raged with gradually increasing
fury until morning, saving that it lulled for an hour a little before midnight.
There was something in the unnatural repose of that hour, and in the after
gathering of the storm' so inconceivably awful and tremendous, that its
bursting into full violence was almost a relief.
The labouring of the
ship in the troubled sea on this night I shall never forget. "Will it ever
be worse than this?" was a question I had often heard asked, when
everything was sliding and bumping about, and when it certainly did seem
difficult to comprehend the possibility of anything afloat being more disturbed,
without toppling over and going down. But what the agitation of a steam-vessel
is, on a bad winter's night in the wild Atlantic, it is impossible for the most
vivid imagination to conceive. To say that she is flung down on her side in the
waves, with her masts dipping into them, and that, springing up again, she
rolls over on the other side, until a heavy sea strikes her with the noise of a
hundred great guns, and hurls her back--that she stops, and staggers, and
shivers, as though stunned, and then, with a violent throbbing at her heart,
darts onward like a monster goaded into madness, to be beaten down, and
battered, and crushed, and leaped on by the angry sea--that thunder, lightning,
hail, and rain, and wind are all in fierce contention for the mastery--that
every plank has its groan, every nail its shriek, and every drop of water in
the great ocean its howling voice--is nothing. To say that all is grand, and
all appalling and horrible in the last degree, is nothing. Words cannot express
it. Thoughts cannot convey it. Only a dream can call it up again in all its
fury, rage, and passion.
And yet, in the very
midst of these terrors, I was placed in a situation so exquisitely ridiculous,
that even then I had as strong a sense of its absurdity as I have now: and
could no more help laughing than I can at any other comical incident, happening
under circumstances the most favourable to its enjoyment. About midnight we
shipped a sea, which forced its way through the sky-lights, burst open the
doors above, and came raging and roaring down into the ladies' cabin, to the
unspeakable consternation of my wife and a little Scotch lady--who, by the way,
had previously sent a message to the captain by the stewardess, requesting him,
with her compliments, to have a steel conductor immediately attached to the top
of every mast, and to the chimney, in order that the ship might not be struck
by lightning. They, and the handmaid before mentioned, being in such ecstasies
of fear that I scarcely knew what to do with them, I naturally bethought myself
of some restorative or comfortable cordial; and nothing better occurring to me,
at the moment, than hot brandy-and-water, I procured a tumblerful without
delay. It being impossible to stand or sit without holding on, they were all
heaped together in one corner of a long sofa--a fixture, extending entirely
across the cabin--where they clung to each other in momentary expectation of
being drowned. When I approached this place with my specific, and was about to
administer it, with many consolatory expressions, to the nearest sufferer, what
was my dismay to see them all roll slowly down to the other end! And when I
staggered to that end, and held out the glass once more, how immensely baffled
were my good intentions by the ship giving another lurch, and their all rolling
back again! I suppose I dodged them up and down this sofa for at least a
quarter of an hour, without reaching them once; and, by the time I did catch
them, the brandy-and-water was diminished, by constant spilling, to a
tea-spoonful. To complete the group, it is necessary to recognise, in this
disconcerted dodger, an individual very pale from sea-sickness, who had shaved
his beard and brushed his hair last at Liverpool: and whose only articles of
dress (linen not included) were a pair of dreadnought trousers; a blue jacket,
formerly admired upon the Thames at Richmond; no stockings; and one slipper.
Of the outrageous
antics performed by that ship next morning; which made bed a practical joke,
and getting up, by any process short of falling out, an impossibility; I say
nothing. But anything like the utter dreariness and desolation that met my eyes
when I literally "tumbled up" on deck at noon, I never saw. Ocean and
sky were all of one dull, heavy, uniform, lead colour. There was no extent of
prospect even over the dreary waste that lay around us, for the sea ran high,
and the horizon encompassed us like a large black hoop. Viewed from the air, or
some tall bluff on shore, it would have been imposing and stupendous, no doubt;
but seen from the wet and rolling decks, it only impressed one giddily and
painfully. In the gale of last night the life-boat had been crushed by one blow
of the sea like a walnut shell; and there it hung dangling in the air: a mere
faggot of crazy boards. The planking of the paddle-boxes had been torn sheer
away. The wheels were exposed and bare; and they whirled and dashed their spray
about the decks at random. Chimney white with crusted salt; topmasts struck;
storm-sails set; rigging all knotted, tangled, wet, and drooping: a gloomier
picture it would be hard to look upon.
I was now comfortably
established by courtesy in the ladies' cabin, where, besides ourselves, there
were only four other passengers. First, the little Scotch lady before mentioned,
on her way to join her husband at New York, who had settled there three years
before. Secondly and thirdly, an honest young Yorkshireman, connected with some
American house; domiciled in that same city, and carrying thither his beautiful
young wife, to whom he had been married but a fortnight, and who was the
fairest specimen of a comely English country girl I have ever seen. Fourthly,
fifthly, and lastly, another couple: newly married too, if one might judge from
the endearments they frequently interchanged: of whom I know no more than that
they were rather a mysterious, runaway kind of couple; that the lady had great
personal attractions also; and that the gentleman carried more guns with him
than Robinson Crusoe, wore a shooting coat, and had two great dogs on board. On
further consideration, I remember that he tried hot roast pig and bottled ale
as a cure for sea-sickness; and that he took these remedies (usually in bed)
day after day, with astonishing perseverance. I may add, for the information of
the curious, that they decidedly failed.
The weather continuing
obstinately and almost unprecedentedly bad, we usually straggled into this
cabin, more or less faint and miserable, about an hour before noon, and lay
down on the sofas to recover; during which interval the captain would look in
to communicate the state of the wind, the moral certainty of its changing
to-morrow (the weather is always going to improve to-morrow, at sea), the
vessel's rate of sailing, and so forth. Observations there were none to tell us
of, for there was no sun to take them by. But a description of one day will
serve for all the rest. Here it is.
The captain being gone,
we compose ourselves to read, if the place be light enough; and if not, we doze
and talk alternately. At one a bell rings, and the stewardess comes down with a
steaming dish of baked potatoes, and another of roasted apples; and plates of
pig's face, cold ham, salt beef; or perhaps a smoking mess of rare hot collops.
We fall-to upon these dainties; eat as much as we can (we have great appetites
now); and are as long as possible about it. If the fire will burn (it will
sometimes), we are pretty cheerful. If it won't, we all remark to each other
that it's very cold, rub our hands, cover ourselves with coats and cloaks, and
lie down again to doze, talk, and read (provided as aforesaid), until
dinner-time. At five another bell rings, and the stewardess reappears with
another dish of potatoes--boiled this time--and store of hot meat of various
kinds: not forgetting the roast pig, to be taken medicinally. We sit down at
table again (rather more cheerfully than before); prolong the meal with a
rather mouldy dessert of apples, grapes, and oranges; and drink our wine and
brandy-and-water. The bottles and glasses are still upon the table, and the
oranges and so forth are rolling about according to their fancy and the ship's
way, when the doctor comes down, by special nightly invitation, to join our
evening rubber: immediately on whose arrival we make a party at whist, and, as
it is a rough night and the cards will not lie on the cloth, we put the tricks
in our pockets as we take them. At whist we remain with exemplary gravity
(deducting a short time for tea and toast) until eleven o'clock, or
thereabouts; when the captain comes down again, in a sou'-wester hat tied under
his chin, and a pilot coat: making the ground wet where he stands. By this time
the card-playing is over, and the bottles and glasses are again upon the table;
and after an hour's pleasant conversation about the ship, the passengers, and
things in general, the captain (who never goes to bed, and is never out of
humour) turns up his coat collar for the deck again; shakes hands all round;
and goes laughing out into the weather as merrily as to a birthday party.
As to daily news, there
is no dearth of that commodity. This passenger is reported to have lost
fourteen pounds at Vingt-et-un in the saloon yesterday; and that passenger
drinks his bottle of champagne every day, and how he does it (being only a
clerk), nobody knows. The head engineer has distinctly said that there never
was such times--meaning weather--and four good hands are ill, and have given
in, dead beat. Several berths are full of water, and all the cabins are leaky.
The ship's cook, secretly swigging damaged whiskey, has been found drunk; and
has been played upon by the fire-engine until quite sober. All the stewards
have fallen down-stairs at various dinner-times, and go about with plasters in
various places. The baker is ill, and so is the pastrycook. A new man, horribly
indisposed, has been required to fill the place of the latter officer; and has
been propped and jammed up with empty casks in a little house upon deck, and
commanded to roll out pie-crusts, which he protests (being highly bilious) it
is death to him to look at. News! A dozen murders on shore would lack the
interest of these slight incidents at sea.
Divided between our
rubber and such topics as these, we were running (as we thought) into Halifax
Harbour, on the fifteenth night, with little wind and a bright moon--indeed, we
had made the Light at its outer entrance, and put the pilot in charge--when
suddenly the ship struck upon a bank of mud. An immediate rush on deck took
place, of course; the sides were crowded in an instant; and for a few minutes
we were in as lively a state of confusion as the greatest lover of disorder
would desire to see. The passengers, and guns, and water casks, and other heavy
matters, being all huddled together aft, however, to lighten her in the head,
she was soon got off; and after some driving on towards an uncomfortable line
of objects (whose vicinity had been announced very early in the disaster by a
loud cry of "Breakers ahead!") and much backing of paddles, and
heaving of the lead into a constantly decreasing depth of water, we dropped
anchor in a strange outlandish-looking which nobody on board could recognise,
although there was land all about us, and so close that we could plainly see
the waving branches of the trees.
It was strange enough,
in the silence of midnight, and the dead stillness that seemed to be created by
the sudden and unexpected stoppage of the engine, which had been clanking and
blasting in our ears incessantly for so many days, to watch the look of blank
astonishment expressed in every face: beginning with the officers, tracing it
through all the passengers, and descending to the very stokers and furnace-men,
who emerged from below, one by one, and clustered together in a smoky group
about the hatchway of the engine-room, comparing notes in whispers. After
throwing up a few rockets and firing signal guns in the hope of being hailed
from the land, or at least of seeing a light--but without any other sight or
sound presenting itself--it was determined to send a boat on shore. It was amusing
to observe how very kind some of the passengers were, in volunteering to go
ashore in this same boat: for the general good, of course: not by any means
because they thought the ship in an unsafe position, or contemplated the
possibility of her heeling over in case the tide were running out. Nor was it
less amusing to remark how desperately unpopular the poor pilot became in one
short minute. He had had his passage out from Liverpool, and during the whole
voyage had been quite a notorious character, as a teller of anecdotes and
cracker of jokes. Yet here were the very men who had laughed the loudest at his
jests, now flourishing their fists in his face, loading him with imprecations,
and defying him to his teeth as a villain!
The boat soon shoved
off, with a lantern and sundry blue lights on board; and in less than an hour
returned; the officer in command bringing with him a tolerably tall young tree,
which he had plucked up by the roots, to satisfy certain distrustful passengers
whose minds misgave them that they were to be imposed upon and shipwrecked, and
who would on no other terms believe that he had been ashore, or had done
anything but fraudulently row a little way into the mist, specially to deceive
them and compass their deaths. Our captain had foreseen from the first that we
must be in a place called the Eastern passage; and so we were. It was about the
last place in the world in which we had any business or reason to be, but a
sudden fog, and some error on the pilot's part, were the cause.
We were surrounded by
banks, and rocks, and shoals of all kinds, but had happily drifted, it seemed,
upon the only safe speck that was to be found thereabouts. Eased by this
report, and by the assurance that the tide was past the ebb, we turned in at
three o'clock in the morning.
I was dressing about
half-past nine next day, when the noise above hurried me on deck. When I had
left it overnight, it was dark, foggy, and damp, and there were bleak hills all
round us. Now, we were gliding down a smooth, broad stream, at the rate of
eleven miles an hour: our colours flying gaily; our crew rigged out in their
smartest clothes; our officers in uniform again; the sun shining as on a
brilliant April day in England; the land stretched out on either side, streaked
with light patches of snow; white wooden houses; people at their doors;
telegraphs working; flags hoisted; wharfs appearing; ships; quays crowded with
people; distant noises; shouts; men and boys running down steep places towards
the pier; all more bright and gay and fresh to our unused eyes than words can
paint them. We came to a wharf, paved with uplifted faces; got alongside, and
were made fast, after some shouting and straining of cables; darted, a score of
us, along the gangway, almost as soon as it was thrust out to meet us, and
before it had reached the ship--and leaped upon the firm glad earth again!
I suppose this Halifax
would have appeared an Elysium, though it had been a curiosity of ugly dulness.
But I carried away with me a most pleasant impression of the town and its
inhabitants, and have preserved it to this hour. Nor was it without regret that
I came home, without having found an opportunity of returning thither, and once
more shaking hands with the friends I made that day.
It happened to be the
opening of the Legislative Council and General Assembly, at which ceremonial
the forms observed on the commencement of a new Session of Parliament in
England were so closely copied, and so gravely presented on a small scale, that
it was like looking at Westminster through the wrong end of a telescope. The
governor, as her Majesty's representative, delivered what may be called the
Speech from the Throne. He said what he had to say manfully and well. The
military band outside the building struck up "God save the Queen"
with great vigour before his Excellency had quite finished; the people shouted;
the ins rubbed their hands; the outs shook their heads; the Government party
said there never was such a good speech; the opposition declared there never
was such a bad one; the Speaker and members of the House of Assembly withdrew
from the bar to say a great deal among themselves, and do a little; and, in
short, everything went on, and promised to go on, just as it does at home upon
the like occasions.
The town is built on
the side of a hill, the highest point being commanded by a strong fortress, not
yet quite finished. Several streets of good breadth and appearance extend from
its summit to the water-side, and are intersected by cross-streets running
parallel with the river. The houses are chiefly of wood. The market is
abundantly supplied: and provisions arc exceedingly cheap. The weather being
unusually mild at that time for the season of the year, there was no sleighing:
but there were plenty of those vehicles in yards and by-places, and some of
them, from the gorgeous quality of their decorations, might have "gone
on" without alteration as triumphal cars in a melodrama at Astley's. The
day was uncommonly fine; the air bracing and healthful; the whole aspect of the
town cheerful, thriving, and industrious.
We lay there seven
hours, to deliver and exchange the mails. At length, having collected all our
bags and all our passengers (including two or three choice spirits, who, having
indulged too freely in oysters and champagne, were found lying insensible on
their backs in unfrequented streets), the engines were again put in motion, and
we stood off for Boston.
Encountering squally
weather again in the Bay of Fundy, we tumbled and rolled about as usual all that
night and all next day. On the next afternoon--that is to say, on Saturday, the
twenty-second of January--an American pilot-boat came along side, and soon
afterwards the Britannia steam-packet from Liverpool, eighteen days out, was
telegraphed at Boston.
The indescribable
interest with which I strained my eyes, as the first patches of American soil
peeped like molehills from the green sea, and followed them, as they swelled,
by slow and almost imperceptible degrees, into a continuous line of coast, can
hardly be exaggerated. A sharp keen wind blew dead against us; a hard frost
prevailed on shore; and the cold was most severe. Yet the air was so intensely
clear, and dry, and bright, that the temperature was not only endurable, but
delicious.
How I remained on deck,
staring about me, until we came alongside the dock, and how, though I had had
as many eyes as Argus, I should have had them all wide open, and all employed
on new objects--are topics which I will not prolong this chapter to discuss.
Neither will I more than hint at my foreigner-like mistake, in supposing that a
party of most active persons, who scrambled on board at the peril of their
lives as we approached the wharf, were newsmen, answering to that industrious
class at home; whereas, despite the leathern wallets of news slung about the
necks of some, and the broadsheets in the hands of all, they were Editors, who
boarded ships in person (as one gentleman in a worsted comforter informed me),
"because they liked the excitement of it." Suffice it in this place
to say, that one of these invaders, with a ready courtesy for which I thank him
here most gratefully, went on before to order rooms at the hotel; and that when
I followed, as I soon did, I found myself rolling through the long passages with
an involuntary imitation of the gait of Mr. T. P. Cooke, in a new nautical
melodrama.
"Dinner, if you
please," said I to the waiter.
"When?" said
the waiter.
"As quick as
possible," said I.
"Right away?"
said the waiter.
After a moment's
hesitation, I answered, "No," at hazard.
"Not right
away?" cried the waiter, with an amount of surprise that made me start.
I looked at him
doubtfully, and returned, "No; I would rather have it in this private
room. I like it very much."
At this I really thought
the waiter must have gone out of his mind; as I believe he would have done, but
for the interposition of another man, who whispered in his ear,
"Directly."
"Well! and that's
a fact!" said the waiter, looking helplessly at me. "Right
away."
I saw now that
"Right away" and "Directly" were one and the same thing. So
I reversed my previous answer, and sat down to dinner in ten minutes
afterwards; and a capital dinner it was.
The hotel (a very
excellent one) is called the Tremont House. It has more galleries, colonnades,
piazzas, and passages than I can remember, or the reader would believe.
IN all the public
establishments of America the utmost courtesy prevails. Most of our Departments
are susceptible of considerable improvement in this respect, but the Custom
House, above all others, would do well to take example from the United States,
and render itself somewhat less odious and offensive to foreigners. The servile
rapacity of the French officials is sufficiently contemptible; but there is a
surly, boorish incivility about our men, alike disgusting to all persons who
fall into their hands, and discreditable to the nation that keeps such
ill-conditioned curs snarling about its gates.
When I landed in
America, I could not help being strongly impressed with the contrast their
Custom House presented, and the attention, politeness, and good-humour with
which its officers discharged their duty.
As we did not land at
Boston, in consequence of some detention at the wharf, until after dark, I
received my first impressions of the city in walking down to the Custom House
on the morning after our arrival, which was Sunday. I am afraid to say, by the
way, how many offers of pews and seats in Church for that morning were made to us,
by formal note of invitation, before we had half finished our first dinner in
America; but if I may be allowed to make a moderate guess, without going into
nicer calculation, I should say that at least as many sittings were proffered
us as would have accommodated a score or two of grown-up families. The number
of creeds and forms of religion to which the pleasure of our company was
requested was in very fair proportion.
Not being able, in the
absence of any change of clothes, to go to church that day, we were compelled
to decline these kindnesses, one and all; and I was reluctantly obliged to
forego the delight of hearing Dr. Channing, who happened to preach that morning
for the first time in a very long interval. I mention the name of this
distinguished and accomplished man (with whom I soon afterwards had the
pleasure of becoming personally acquainted), that I may have the gratification
of recording my humble tribute of admiration and respect for his high abilities
and character; and for the bold philanthropy with which he has ever opposed
himself to that most hideous blot and foul disgrace--Slavery.
To return to Boston.
When I got into the streets upon this Sunday morning, the air was so clear, the
houses were so bright and gay; the sign-boards were painted in such gaudy
colours; the gilded letters were so very golden; the bricks were so very red,
the stone was so very white, the blinds and area railings were so very green,
the knobs and plates upon the street-doors so marvelously bright and twinkling;
and all so slight and unsubstantial in appearance-t-hat every thoroughfare in
the city looked exactly like a scene in a pantomime. It rarely happens in the
business streets that a tradesman--if I may venture to call anybody a
tradesman, where everybody is a merchant--resides above his store; so that many
occupations are often carried on in one house, and the whole front is covered
with boards and inscriptions. As I walked along, I kept glancing up at these
boards, confidently expecting to see a few of them change into something; and I
never turned a corner suddenly without looking out for the Clown and Pantaloon,
who, I had no doubt, were hiding in a doorway or behind some pillar close at
hand. As to Harlequin and Columbine, I discovered immediately that they lodged
(they are always looking after lodgings in a pantomime) at a very small
clock-maker's, one story high, near the hotel; which, in addition to various
symbols and devices, almost covering the whole front, had a great dial hanging
out--to be jumped through, of course.
The suburbs are, if
possible, even more unsubstantial-looking than the city. The white wooden
houses (so white that it makes one wink to look at them), with their green
jalousie blinds, are so sprinkled and dropped about in all directions, without
seeming to have any root at all in the ground; and the small churches and
chapels are so prim, and bright, and highly varnished; that I almost believed
the whole affair could be taken up piecemeal like a child's toy, and crammed
into a little box.
The city is a beautiful
one, and cannot fail, I should imagine, to impress all strangers very
favourably. The private dwelling-houses are, for the most part, large and
elegant; the shops extremely good; and the public buildings handsome. The State
House is built upon the summit of a hill, which rises gradually at first, and
afterwards by a steep ascent, almost from the water's edge. In front is a green
enclosure, called the Common. The site is beautiful: and from the top there is
a charming panoramic view of the whole town and neighbourhood. In addition to a
variety of commodious offices, it contains two handsome chambers: in one the
House of Representatives of the State hold their meetings: in the other, the
Senate. Such proceedings as I saw here were conducted with perfect gravity and
decorum; and were certainly calculated to inspire attention and respect. There
is no doubt that much of the intellectual refinement and superiority of Boston
is referable to the quiet influence of the University of Cambridge, which is
within three or four miles of the city. The resident professors at that
university are gentlemen of learning and varied attainments; and are, without
one exception that I can call to mind, men who would shed a grace upon, and do
honour to, any society in the civilised world. Many of the resident gentry in
Boston and its neighbourhood, and I think I am not mistaken in adding, a large
majority of those who are attached to the liberal professions there, have been
educated at this same school. Whatever the defects of American universities may
be, they disseminate no prejudices; rear no bigots; dig up the buried ashes of
no old superstitions; never interpose between the people and their improvement;
exclude no man because of his religious opinions; above all, in their whole
course of study and instruction, recognise a world, and a broad one too, lying
beyond the college walls.
It was a source of
inexpressible pleasure to me to observe the almost imperceptible, but not less
certain effect, wrought by this institution among the small community of
Boston; and to note at every turn the humanising tastes and desires it has
engendered; the affectionate friendships to which it has given rise; the amount
of vanity and prejudice it has dispelled. The golden calf they worship at
Boston is a pigmy compared with the giant effigies set up in other parts of
that vast countinghouse which lies beyond the Atlantic; and the almighty dollar
sinks into something comparatively insignificant, amidst a whole Pantheon of
better gods.
Above all, I sincerely
believe that the public institutions and charities of this capital of
Massachusetts are as nearly perfect as the most considerate wisdom,
benevolence, and humanity can make them. I never in my life was more affected by
the contemplation of happiness, under circumstances of privation and
bereavement, than in my visits to these establishments.
It is a great and
pleasant feature of all such institutions in America, that they are either
supported by the State or assisted by the State; or (in the event of their not
needing its helping hand) that they act in concert with it, and are
emphatically the people's. I cannot but think, with a view to the principle and
its tendency to elevate or depress the character of the industrious classes,
that a Public Charity is immeasurably better than a Private Foundation, no
matter how munificently the latter may be endowed. In our own country, where it
has not, until within these later days, been a very popular fashion with
governments to display any extraordinary regard for the great mass of the
people, or to recognise their existence as improvable creatures, private
charities, unexampled in the history of the earth, have arisen, to do an
incalculable amount of good among the destitute and afflicted. But the
government of the country, having neither act nor part in them, is not in the
receipt of any portion of the gratitude they inspire; and, offering very little
shelter or relief beyond that which is to be found in the workhouse and the gaol,
has come, not unnaturally, to be looked upon by the poor rather as a stern
master, quick to correct and punish, than a kind protector, merciful and
vigilant in their hour of need.
The maxim, that out of
evil cometh good, is strongly illustrated by these establishments at home; as
the records of the Prerogative Office in Doctors' Commons can abundantly prove.
Some immensely rich old gentleman or lady, surrounded by needy relatives,
makes, upon a low average, a will a week. The old gentleman or lady, never very
remarkable in the best of times for good temper, is full of aches and pains
from head to foot; full of fancies and caprices; full of spleen, distrust,
suspicion, and dislike. To cancel old wills, and invent new ones, is at last
the sole business of such a testator's existence; and relations and friends
(some of whom have been bred up distinctly to inherit a large share of the
property, and have been, from their cradles, specially disqualified from
devoting themselves to any useful pursuit, on that account) are so often and so
unexpectedly and summarily cut off, and reinstated, and cut off again, that the
whole family, down to the remotest cousin, is kept in a perpetual fever. At
length it becomes plain that the old lady or gentleman has not long to live;
and the plainer this becomes, the more clearly the old lady or gentleman
perceives that everybody is in a conspiracy against their poor old dying
relative; wherefore the old lady or gentleman makes another last will-- the
last this time--conceals the same in a china teapot, and expires next day. Then
it turns out, that the whole of the real and personal estate is divided between
half-a-dozen charities; and that the dead-and-gone testator has in pure spite
helped to do a great deal of good, at the cost of an immense amount of evil
passion and misery.
The Perkins Institution
and Massachusetts Asylum for the Blind, at Boston, is superintended by a body
of trustees who make an annual report to the corporation. The indigent blind of
that State are admitted gratuitously. Those from the adjoining State of
Connecticut, or from the States of Maine, Vermont or New Hampshire, are
admitted by a warrant from the State to which they respectively belong; or,
failing that, must find security among their friends, for the payment of about
twenty pounds English for their first year's board and instruction, and ten for
the second. "After the first year," say the trustees, "an
account current will be opened with each pupil; he will be charged with the actual
cost of his board, which will not exceed two dollars per week;" a trifle
more than eight shillings English; "and he will be credited with the
amount paid for him by the State, or by his friends; also with his earnings
over and above the cost of the stock which he uses; so that all his earnings
over one dollar per week will be his own. By the third year it will be known
whether his earnings will more than pay the actual cost of his board; if they
should, he will have it at his option to remain and receive his earnings, or
not. Those who prove unable to earn their own livelihood will not be retained;
as it is not desirable to convert the establishment into an almshouse, or to
retain any but working bees in the hive. Those who, by physical or mental
imbecility, are disqualified for work, are thereby disqualified from being
members of an industrious community; and they can be better provided for in
establishments fitted for the infirm."
I went to see this
place one very fine winter morning: an Italian sky above, and the air so clear
and bright on every side, that even my eyes, which are none of the best, could
follow the minute lines and scraps of tracery in distant buildings. Like most
other public institutions in America of the same class, it stands a mile or two
without the town, in a cheerful, healthy spot; and is an airy, spacious,
handsome edifice. It is built upon a height, commanding the harbour. When I
paused for a moment at the door, and marked how fresh and free the whole scene
was--what sparkling bubbles glanced upon the waves, and welled up every moment
to the surface, as though the world below, like that above, were radiant with
the bright day, and gushing over in its fulness of light--when I gazed from
sail to sail away upon a ship at sea, a tiny speck of shining white, the only
cloud upon the still, deep, distant blue--and, turning, saw a blind boy with
his sightless face addressed that way, as though he too had some sense within
him of the glorious distance: I felt a kind of sorrow that the place should be
so very light, and a strange wish that for his sake it were darker. It was but
momentary, of course, and a mere fancy, but I felt it keenly for all that.
The children were at
their daily tasks in different rooms, except a few who were already dismissed,
and were at play. Here, as in many institutions, no uniform is worn; and I was
very glad of it, for two reasons. Firstly, because I am sure that nothing but
senseless custom and want of thought would reconcile us to the liveries and
badges we are so fond of at home. Secondly, because the absence of these things
presents each child to the visitor in his or her own proper character, with its
individuality unimpaired; not lost in a dull, ugly, monotonous repetition of
the same unmeaning garb: which is really an important consideration. The wisdom
of encouraging a little harmless pride in personal appearance even among the
blind, or the whimsical absurdity of considering charity and leather breeches
inseparable companions, as we do, requires no comment.
Good order,
cleanliness, and comfort pervaded every corner of the building. The various
classes, who were gathered round their teachers, answered the questions put to
them with readiness and intelligence, and in a spirit of cheerful contest for
precedence which pleased me very much. Those who were at play were gleesome and
noisy as other children. More spiritual and affectionate friendships appeared
to exist among them than would be found among other young persons suffering
under no deprivation; but this I expected and was prepared to find. It is a
part of the great scheme of Heaven's merciful consideration for the afflicted.
In a portion of the
building, set apart for that purpose, are workshops for blind persons whose
education is finished, and who have acquired a trade, but who cannot pursue it
in an ordinary manufactory because of their deprivation. Several people were at
work here; making brushes, mattresses, and so forth; and the cheerfulness,
industry, and good order discernible in every other part of the building,
extended to this department also.
On the ringing of a
bell, the pupils all repaired, without any guide or leader, to a spacious
music-hall, where they took their seats in an orchestra erected for that
purpose, and listened with manifest delight to a voluntary on the organ, played
by one of themselves. At its conclusion, the performer, a boy of nineteen or
twenty, gave place to a girl; and to her accompaniment they all sang a hymn,
and afterwards a sort of chorus. It was very sad to look upon and hear them,
happy though their condition unquestionably was; and I saw that one blind girl,
who (being for the time deprived of the use of her limbs by illness) sat close
beside me with her face towards them, wept silently the while she listened.
It is strange to watch
the faces of the blind, and see how free they are from all concealment of what
is passing in their thoughts; observing which, a man with eyes may blush to
contemplate the mask he wears. Allowing for one shade of anxious expression
which is never absent from their countenances, and the like of which we may
readily detect in our own faces if we try to feel our way in the dark, every
idea, as it rises within them, is expressed with the lightning's speed, and
nature's truth. If the company at a rout, or drawing-room at court, could only
for one time be as unconscious of the eyes upon them as blind men and women
are, what secrets would come out, and what a worker of hypocrisy this sight,
the loss of which we so much pity, would appear to be!
The thought occurred to
me as I sat down in another room, before a girl blind, deaf, and dumb;
destitute of smell; and nearly so of taste: before a fair young creature with
every human faculty, and hope, and power of goodness and affection, enclosed
within her delicate frame, and but one outward sense--the sense of touch. There
she was, before me; built up, as it were, in a marble cell, impervious to any
ray of light, or particle of sound; with her poor white hand peeping through a
chink in the wall, beckoning to some good man for help, that an Immortal soul
might be awakened.
Long before I looked
upon her, the help had come. Her face was radiant with intelligence and
pleasure. Her hair, braided by her own hands, was bound about a head whose
intellectual capacity and development were beautifully expressed in its
graceful outline, and its broad open brow; her dress, arranged by herself, was
a pattern of neatness and simplicity; the work she had knitted lay beside her;
her writing-book was on the desk she leaned upon. From the mournful ruin of
such bereavement, there had slowly risen up this gentle, tender, guileless,
grateful-hearted being.
Like other inmates of
that house, she had a green ribbon bound round her eyelids. A doll she had
dressed lay near upon the ground. I took it up, and saw that she had made a
green fillet such as she wore herself, and fastened it about its mimic eyes.
She was seated in a
little enclosure, made by school desks and forms, writing her daily journal.
But soon finishing this pursuit, she engaged in an animated communication with
a teacher who sat beside her. This was a favourite mistress with the poor
pupil. If she could see the face of her fair instructress, she would not love
her less, I am sure.
I have extracted a few
disjointed fragments of her history, from an account written by that one man
who has made her what she is. It is a very beautiful and touching narrative;
and I wish I could present it entire.
Her name is Laura
Bridgman. "She was born in Hanover, New Hampshire, on the twenty-first of
December, 1829. She is described as having been a very sprightly and pretty
infant, with bright blue eyes. She was, however, so puny and feeble until she
was a year and a half old, that her parents hardly hoped to rear her. She was
subject to severe fits, which seemed to rack her frame almost beyond her power
of endurance: and life was held by the feeblest tenure: but, when a year and a
half old, she seemed to rally; the dangerous symptoms subsided; and, at twenty
months old, she was perfectly well.
"Then her mental
powers, hitherto stinted in their growth, rapidly developed themselves; and
during the four months of health which she enjoyed, she appears (making due
allowance for a fond mother's account) to have displayed a considerable degree
of intelligence.
"But suddenly she
sickened again; her disease raged with great violence during five weeks, when
her eyes and ears were inflamed, suppurated, and their contents were
discharged. But though sight and hearing were gone for ever, the poor child's
sufferings were not ended. The fever raged during seven weeks; for five months
she was kept in bed in a darkened room; it was a year before she could walk
unsupported, and two years before she could sit up all day. It was now observed
that her sense of smell was almost entirely destroyed; and, consequently, that
her taste was much blunted.
"It was not until
four years of age that the poor child's bodily health seemed restored, and she
was able to enter upon her apprenticeship of life and the world.
"But what a
situation was hers! The darkness and the silence of the tomb were around her:
no mother's smile called forth her answering smile, no father's voice taught
her to imitate his sounds:--they, brothers and sisters, were but forms of
matter which resisted her touch, but which differed not from the furniture of
the house, save in warmth, and in the power of locomotion; and not even in
these respects from the dog and the cat.
"But the immortal
spirit which had been implanted within her could not die, nor be maimed nor
mutilated; and though most of its avenues of communication with the world were
cut off, it began to manifest itself through the others. As soon as she could
walk, she began to explore the room, and then the house; she became familiar
with the form, density, weight, and heat of every article she could lay her
hands upon. She followed her mother, and felt her hands and arms, as she was
occupied about the house; and her disposition to imitate, led her to repeat
everything herself. She even learned to sew a little, and to knit."
The reader will
scarcely need to be told, however, that the opportunities of communicating with
her were very, very limited; and that the moral effects of her wretched state
soon began to appear. Those who cannot be enlightened by reason can only be
controlled by force; and this, coupled with her great privations, must soon
have reduced her to a worse condition than that of the beasts that perish, but
for timely and unhoped-for aid.
"At this time I
was so fortunate as to hear of the child, and immediately hastened to Hanover
to see her. I found her with a well-formed figure; a strongly-marked,
nervous-sanguine temperament; a large and beautifully-shaped head; and the whole
system in healthy action. The parents were easily induced to consent to her
coming to Boston, and on the 4th of October, 1837, they brought her to the
Institution.
"For awhile she
was much bewildered; and after waiting about two weeks, until she became
acquainted with her new locality, and somewhat familiar with the inmates, the
attempt was made to give her knowledge of arbitrary signs, by which she could
interchange thoughts with others.
"There was one of
two ways to be adopted: either to go on to build up a language of signs on the
basis of the natural language which she had already commenced herself, or to
teach her the purely arbitrary language in common use: that is, to give her a
sign for every individual thing, or to give her a knowledge of letters by
combination of which she might express her idea of the existence, and the mode
and condition of existence, of any thing. The former would have been easy, but
very ineffectual; the latter seemed very difficult, but, if accomplished, very
effectual. I determined, therefore, to try the latter.
"The first
experiments were made by taking articles in common use, such as knives, forks,
spoons, keys, &c., and pasting upon them labels with their names printed in
raised letters. These she felt very carefully, and soon, of course,
distinguished that the crooked lines spoon differed as much from the crooked
lines key, as the spoon differed from the key in form.
"Then small
detached labels, with the same words printed upon them, were put into her
hands; and she soon observed that they were similar to the ones pasted on the
articles. She showed her perception of this similarity by laying the label key
upon the key, and the label spoon upon the spoon. She was encouraged here by
the natural sign of approbation, patting on the head.
"The same process
was then repeated with all the articles which she could handle and she very
easily learned to place the proper labels upon them. It was evident, however,
that the only intellectual exercise was that of imitation and memory. She
recollected that the label book was placed upon a book, and she repeated the
process first from imitation, next from memory, with only the motive of love of
approbation, but apparently without the intellectual perception of any relation
between the things. "After awhile, instead of labels, the individual
letters were given to her on detached bits of paper: they were arranged side by
side so as to spell book, key, &c.; then they were mixed up in a heap, and
a sign was made for her to arrange them herself, so as to express the words
book, key, &c.; and she did so.
"Hitherto the
process had been mechanical, and the success about as great as teaching a very
knowing dog a variety of tricks. The poor child had sat in mute amazement, and
patiently imitated everything her teacher did; but now the truth began to flash
upon her: her intellect began to work: she perceived that here was a way by
which she could herself make up a sign of anything that was in her own mind,
and show it to another mind; and at once her countenance lighted up with a
human expression: it was no longer a dog, or parrot: it was an immortal spirit,
eagerly seizing upon a new link of union with other spirits! I could almost fix
upon the moment when this truth dawned upon her mind, and spread its light to
her countenance; I saw that the great obstacle was overcome; and that
henceforward nothing but patient and persevering, but plain and
straightforward, efforts were to be used.
"The result, thus
far, is quickly related, and easily conceived, but not so was the process; for
many weeks of apparently unprofitable labour were passed before it was
effected.
"When it was said
above, that a sign was made, it was intended to say that the action was
performed by her teacher, she feeling his hands, and then imitating the motion.
"The next step was
to procure a set of metal types, with the different letters of the alphabet
cast upon their ends; also a board, in which were square holes, into which
holes she could set the types; so that the letters on their ends could alone be
felt above the surface.
"Then, on any
article being handed to her,--for instance, a pencil, or a watch,--she would
select the component letters, and arrange them on her board, and read them with
apparent pleasure.
"She was exercised
for several weeks in this way, until her vocabulary became extensive; and then
the important step was taken of teaching her how to represent the different
letters by the position of her fingers, instead of the cumbrous apparatus of
the board and types. She accomplished this speedily and easily, for her
intellect had begun to work in aid of her teacher, and her progress was rapid.
"This was the
period, about three months after she had commenced, that the first report of
her case was made, in which it is stated that 'she has just learned the manual
alphabet, as used by the deaf mutes, and it is a subject of delight and wonder
to see how rapidly, correctly, and eagerly she goes on with her labours. Her
teacher gives her a new object,--for instance, a pencil,--first lets her
examine it, and get an idea of its use, then teaches her how to spell it by
making the signs for the letters with her own fingers: the child grasps her
hand, and feels her fingers, as the different letters are formed; she turns her
head a little on one side, like a person listening closely; her lips are apart;
she seems scarcely to breathe; and her countenance, at first anxious, gradually
changes to a smile, as she comprehends the lesson. She then holds up her tiny
fingers, and spells the word in the manual alphabet; next, she takes her types
and arranges her letters; and last, to make sure that she is right, she takes
the whole of the types composing the word, and places them upon or in contact
with the pencil, or whatever the object may be.'
"The whole of the
succeeding year was passed in gratifying her eager inquiries for the names of
every object which she could possibly handle; in exercising her in the use of
the manual alphabet; in extending in every possible way her knowledge of the
physical relations of things; and in proper care of her health.
"At the end of the
year a report of her case was made, from which the following is an extract.
"'It has been
ascertained, beyond the possibility of doubt, that she cannot see a ray of
light, cannot hear the least sound, and never exercises her sense of smell, if
she have any. Thus her mind dwells in darkness and stillness, as profound as
that of a closed tomb at midnight. Of beautiful sights, and sweet sounds, and
pleasant odours she has no conception; nevertheless, she seems as happy and
playful as a bird or a lamb; and the employment of her intellectual faculties,
or the acquirement of a new idea, gives her a vivid pleasure, which is plainly
marked in her expressive features. She never seems to repine, but has all the
buoyancy and gaiety of childhood. She is fond of fun and frolic, and, when
playing with the rest of the children, her shrill laugh sounds loudest of the
group.
"'When left alone,
she seems very happy if she have her knitting or sewing, and will busy herself
for hours: if she have no occupation, she evidently amuses herself by imaginary
dialogues, or by recalling past impressions; she counts with her fingers, or
spells out names of things which she has recently learned, in the manual
alphabet of the deaf mutes. In this lonely self-communion she seems to reason,
reflect, and argue: if she spell a word wrong with the fingers of her right
hand, she instantly strikes it with her left, as her teacher does, in sign of
disapprobation; if right, then she pats herself upon the head and looks
pleased. She sometimes purposely spells a word wrong with the left hand, looks
roguish for a moment and laughs, and then with the right hand strikes the left,
as if to correct it.
"'During the year
she has attained great dexterity in the use of the manual alphabet of the deaf
mutes; and she spells out the words and sentences which she knows, so fast and
so deftly, that only those accustomed to this language can follow with the eye the
rapid motions of her fingers.
"'But wonderful as
is the rapidity with which she writes her thoughts upon the air, still more so
is the ease and accuracy with which she reads the words thus written by
another; grasping their hands in hers, and following every movement of their
fingers, as letter after letter conveys their meaning to her mind. It is in
this way that she converses with her blind playmates, and nothing can more
forcibly show the power of mind in forcing matter to its purpose than a meeting
between them. For if great talent and skill are necessary for two pantomimes to
paint their thoughts and feelings by the movements of the body, and the
expression of the countenance, how much greater the difficulty when darkness
shrouds them both, and the one can hear no sound!
"'When Laura is
walking through a passage-way, with her hands spread before her, she knows
instantly every one she meets, and passes them with a sign of recognition: but
if it be a girl of her own age, and especially if it be one of her favourites,
there is instantly a bright smile of recognition, and a twining of arms, a
grasping of hands, and a swift telegraphing upon the tiny fingers; whose rapid
evolutions convey the thoughts and feelings from the outposts of one mind to
those of the other. There are questions and answers, exchanges of joy or
sorrow; there are kissings and partings, just as between little children with
all their senses.'
"During this year,
and six months after she had left home, her mother came to visit her, and the
scene of their meeting was an interesting one.
"The mother stood
some time, gazing with overflowing eyes upon her unfortunate child, who, all
unconscious of her presence, was playing about the room. Presently Laura ran
against her, and at once began feeling her hands, examining her dress, and
trying to find out if she knew her; but not succeeding in this, she turned away
as from a stranger, and the poor woman could not conceal the pang she felt at
finding that her beloved child did not know her.
"She then gave
Laura a string of beads which she used to wear at home, which were recognised
by the child at once, who, with much joy, put them around her neck, and sought
me eagerly to say she understood the string was from her home.
"The mother now
tried to caress her, but poor Laura repelled her, preferring to be with her
acquaintances.
"Another article
from home was now given her, and she began to look much interested; she
examined the stranger much closer, and gave me to understand that she knew she
came from Hanover; she even endured her caresses, but would leave her with
indifference at the slightest signal. The distress of the mother was now
painful to behold; for, although she had feared that she should not be
recognised, the painful reality of being treated with cold indifference by a
darling child was too much for woman's nature to bear.
"After awhile, on
the mother taking hold of her again, a vague idea seemed to flit across Laura's
mind that this could not be a stranger; she therefore felt her hands very
eagerly, while her countenance assumed an expression of intense interest; she
became very pale, and then suddenly red; hope seemed struggling with doubt and
anxiety, and never were contending emotions more strongly painted upon the
human face: at this moment of painful uncertainty, the mother drew her close to
her side, and kissed her fondly, when at once the truth flashed upon the child,
and all mistrust and anxiety disappeared from her face, as with an expression
of exceeding joy she eagerly nestled to the bosom of her parent, and yielded
herself to her fond embraces.
"After this the
beads were all unheeded; the playthings which were offered to her were utterly
disregarded; her playmates, for whom but a moment before she gladly left the stranger,
now vainly strove to pull her from her mother; and though she yielded her usual
instantaneous obedience to my signal to follow me, it was evidently with
painful reluctance. She clung close to me, as if bewildered and fearful; and
when, after a moment, I took her to her mother, she sprang to her arms, and
clung to her with eager joy.
"The subsequent
parting between them showed alike the affection, the intelligence, and the
resolution of the child.
"Laura accompanied
her mother to the door, clinging close to her all the way, until they arrived
at the threshold, where she paused, and felt around to ascertain who was near
her. Perceiving the matron, of whom she is very fond, she grasped her with one
hand, holding on convulsively to her mother with the other; and thus she stood
for a moment: then she dropped her mother's hand; put her handkerchief to her
eyes; and turning round, clung sobbing to the matron; while her mother
departed, with emotions as deep as those of her child.
* * * * * *
"It has been
remarked, in former reports, that she can distinguish different degrees of
intellect in others, and that she soon regarded almost with contempt a
new-comer, when, after a few days, she discovered her weakness of mind. This
unamiable part of her character has been more strongly developed during the
past year.
"She chooses for
her friends and companions those children who are intelligent, and can talk
best with her; and she evidently dislikes to be with those who are deficient in
intellect, unless, indeed, she can make them serve her purposes, which she is
evidently inclined to do. She takes advantage of them, and makes them wait upon
her, in a manner that she knows she could not exact of others; and in various
ways she shows her Saxon blood.
"She is fond of
having other children noticed and caressed by the teachers, and those whom she
respects; but this must not be carried too far, or she becomes jealous. She
wants to have her share, which, if not the lion's, is the greater part; and if
she does not get it, she says, 'My mother will love me.'
"Her tendency to
imitation is so strong, that it leads her to actions which must be entirely
incomprehensible to her, and which can give her no other pleasure than the
gratification of an internal faculty. She has been known to sit for half an
hour, holding a book before her sightless eyes, and moving her lips, as she has
observed seeing people do when reading.
"She one day
pretended that her doll was sick; and went through all the motions of tending
it, and giving it medicine; she then put it carefully to bed, and placed a
bottle of hot water to its feet, laughing all the time most heartily. When I
came home, she insisted upon my going to see it, and feel its pulse; and when I
told her to put a blister on its back, she seemed to enjoy it amazingly, and
almost screamed with delight.
"Her social
feelings, and her affections, are very strong; and when she is sitting at work,
or at her studies, by the side of one of her little friends, she will break off
from her task every few moments, to hug and kiss them with an earnestness and
warmth that is touching to behold.
"When left alone,
she occupies, and apparently amuses herself, and seems quite contented; and so
strong seems to be the natural tendency of thought to put on the garb of
language, that she often soliloquises in the finger language, slow and tedious
as it is. But it is only when alone that she is quiet: for if she becomes
sensible of the presence of any one near her, she is restless until she can sit
close beside them, hold their hand, and converse with them by signs.
"In her
intellectual character it is pleasing to observe an insatiable thirst for
knowledge, and a quick perception of the relations of things. In her moral
character, it is beautiful to behold her continual gladness, her keen enjoyment
of existence, her expansive love, her unhesitating confidence, her sympathy
with suffering, her conscientiousness, truthfulness, and hopefulness."
Such are a few
fragments from the simple but most interesting and instructive history of Laura
Bridgman. The name of her great benefactor and friend, who writes it, is Doctor
Howe. There are not many persons, I hope and believe, who, after reading these
passages, can ever hear that name with indifference.
A further account has
been published by Doctor Howe, since the report from which I have just quoted.
It describes her rapid mental growth and improvement during twelve months more,
and brings her little history down to the end of last year. It is very remarkable
that as we dream in words, and carry on imaginary conversations, in which we
speak both for ourselves and for the shadows who appear to us in those visions
of the night, so she, having no words, uses her finger alphabet in her sleep.
And it has been ascertained that when her slumber is broken, and is much
disturbed by dreams, she expresses her thoughts in an irregular and confused
manner on her fingers: just as we should murmur and mutter them indistinctly in
the like circumstances.
I turned over the leaves
of her Diary, and found it written in a fair, legible, square hand, and
expressed in terms which were quite intelligible without any explanation. On my
saying that I should like to see her write again, the teacher who sat beside
her bade her, in their language, sign her name upon a slip of paper twice or
thrice. In doing so, I observed that she kept her left hand always touching and
following up her right, in which, of course, she held the pen. No line was
indicated by any contrivance, but she wrote straight and freely.
She had, until now,
been quite unconscious of the presence of visitors; but, having her hand placed
in that of the gentleman who accompanied me, she immediately expressed his name
upon her teacher's palm. Indeed, her sense of touch is now so exquisite, that
having been acquainted with a person once, she can recognise him or her after
almost any interval. This gentleman had been in her company, I believe, but
very seldom, and certainly had not seen her for many months. My hand she rejected
at once, as she does that of any man who is a stranger to her. But she retained
my wife's with evident pleasure, kissed her, and examined her dress with a
girl's curiosity and interest.
She was merry and
cheerful, and showed much innocent playfulness in her intercourse with her
teacher. Her delight on recognising a favourite playfellow and
companion--herself a blind girl--who silently, and with an equal enjoyment of
the coming surprise, took a seat beside her, was beautiful to witness. It
elicited from her at first, as other slight circumstances did twice or thrice
during my visit, an uncouth noise which was rather painful to hear. But, on her
teacher touching her lips, she immediately desisted, and embraced her
laughingly and affectionately.
I had previously been
into another chamber, where a number of blind boys were swinging, and climbing,
and engaged in various sports. They all clamoured, as we entered, to the
assistant master, who accompanied us, "Look at me, Mr. Hart! Please, Mr.
Hart, look at!" evincing, I thought, even in this, an anxiety peculiar to
their condition, that their little feats of agility should be seen. Among them
was a small laughing fellow, who stood aloof, entertaining himself with a
gymnastic exercise for bringing the arms and chest into play; which he enjoyed
mightily; especially when, in thrusting out his right arm, he brought it into
contact with another boy. Like Laura Bridgman, this young child was deaf, and
dumb, and blind.
Doctor Howe's account
of this pupil's first instruction is so very striking, and so intimately
connected with Laura herself, that I cannot refrain from a short extract. I may
premise that the poor boy's name is Oliver Caswell; that he is thirteen years
of age; and that he was in full possession of all his faculties until three
years and four months old. He was then attacked by scarlet fever: in four weeks
became deaf; in a few weeks more, blind; in six months, dumb. He showed his
anxious sense of this last deprivation by often feeling the lips of other persons
when they were talking, and then putting his hand upon his own, as if to assure
himself that he had them in the right position.
"His thirst for
knowledge," says Doctor Howe, "proclaimed itself as soon as he
entered the house, by his eager examination of everything he could feel or
smell in his new location. For instance, treading upon the register of a
furnace, he instantly stooped down and began to feel it, and soon discovered
the way in which the upper plate moved upon the lower one; but this was not
enough for him, so, lying down upon his face, he applied his tongue first to
one, then to the other, and seemed to discover that they were of different
kinds of metal.
"His signs were
expressive: and the strictly natural language, laughing, crying, sighing,
kissing, embracing, &c., was perfect.
"Some of the
analogical signs which (guided by his faculty of imitation) he had contrived,
were comprehensible; such as the waving motion of his hand for the motion of a
boat, the circular one for a wheel, &c.
"The first object
was to break up the use of these signs, and to substitute for them the use of
purely arbitrary ones.
"Profiting by the
experience I had gained in the other cases, I omitted several steps of the
process before employed, and commenced at once with the finger language.
Taking, therefore, several articles having short names, such as key, cup, mug,
&c., and with Laura for an auxiliary, I sat down, and taking his hand,
placed it upon one of them, and then with my own made the letters k e y. He
felt my hands eagerly with both of his, and, on my repeating the process, he
evidently tried to imitate the motions of my fingers. In a few minutes he
contrived to feel the motions of my fingers with one hand, and holding out the
other, he tried to imitate them, laughing most heartily when he succeeded.
Laura was by, interested even to agitation; and the two presented a singular
sight: her face was flushed and anxious, and her fingers twined in among ours
so closely as to follow every motion, but so lightly as not to embarrass them;
while Oliver stood attentive, his head a little aside, his face turned up, his
left hand grasping mine, and his right held out; at every motion of my fingers
his countenance betokened keen attention; there was an expression of anxiety as
he tried to imitate the motions; then a smile came stealing out as he thought
he could do so, and spread into a joyous laugh the moment he succeeded, and
felt me pat his head, and Laura clap him heartily upon the back, and jump up
and down in her joy.
"He learned more
than a half-dozen letters in half an hour, and seemed delighted with his
success, at least in gaining approbation. His attention then began to flag, and
I commenced playing with him. It was evident that in all this he had merely
been imitating the motions of my fingers, and placing his hand upon the key,
cup, &c., as part of the process, without any perception of the relation
between the sign and the object.
"When he was tired
with play I took him back to the table, and he was quite ready to begin again
his process of imitation. He soon learned to make the letters for key, pen,
pin; and, by having the object repeatedly placed in his hand, he at last perceived
the relation I wished to establish between them. This was evident, because,
when I made the letters p i n, or p e n, or c u p, he would select the article.
"The perception of
this relation was not accompanied by that radiant flash of intelligence, and that
glow of joy, which marked the delightful moment when Laura first perceived it.
I then placed all the articles on the table, and going away a little distance
with the children, placed Oliver's fingers in the positions to spell key, on
which Laura went and brought the article: the little fellow seemed to be much
amused by this, and looked very attentive and smiling. I then caused him to
make the letters b r e a d, and in an instant Laura went and brought him a
piece; he smelled at it; put it to his lips; cocked up his head with a most
knowing look; seemed to reflect a moment; and then laughed outright, as much as
to say, þAha! I understand now how something may be made out of this.'
"It was now clear
that he had the capacity and inclination to learn, that he was a proper subject
for instruction, and needed only persevering attention. I therefore put him in
the hands of an intelligent teacher, nothing doubting of his rapid
progress."
Well may this gentleman
call that a delightful moment, in which some distant promise of her present
state first gleamed upon the darkened mind of Laura Bridgman. Throughout his
life, the recollection of that moment will be to him a source of pure, unfading
happiness; nor will it shine least brightly on the evening of his days of Noble
Usefulness.
The affection that
exists between these two--the master and the pupil--is as far removed from all
ordinary care and regard, as the circumstances in which it has had its growth
are apart from the common occurrences of life. He is occupied now in devising
means of imparting to her higher knowledge, and of conveying to her some
adequate idea of the Great Creator of that universe in which, dark and silent
and scentless though it be to her, she has such deep delight and glad
enjoyment.
Ye who have eyes and
see not, and have ears and hear not; ye who are as the hypocrites of sad
countenances, and disfigure your faces that ye may seem unto men to fast; learn
healthy cheerfulness, and mild contentment, from the deaf, and dumb, and blind!
Self-elected saints with gloomy brows, this sightless, earless, voiceless child
may teach you lessons you will do well to follow. Let that poor hand of hers
lie gently on your hearts; for there may be something in its healing touch akin
to that of the Great Master whose precepts you misconstrue, whose lessons you
pervert, of whose charity and sympathy with all the world not one among you, in
his daily practice, knows as much as many of the worst among those fallen
sinners, to whom you are liberal in nothing but the preachment of perdition!
As I rose to quit the
room, a pretty little child of one of the attendants came running in to greet
its father. For the moment, a child with eyes among the sightless crowd
impressed me almost as painfully as the blind boy in the porch had done, two
hours ago. Ah! how much brighter and more deeply blue, glowing and rich though
it had been before, was the scene without, contrasting with the darkness of so
many youthful lives within!
At SOUTH BOSTON, as it
is called, in a situation excellently adapted for the purpose, several
charitable institutions are clustered together. One of these is the State
Hospital for the insane; admirably conducted on those enlightened principles of
conciliation and kindness, which twenty years ago would have been worse than
heretical, and which have been acted upon with so much success in our own
pauper asylum at Hanwell. "Evince a desire to show some confidence, and
repose some trust, even in mad people," said the resident physician, as we
walked along the galleries, his patients flocking round us unrestrained. Of
those who deny or doubt the wisdom of this maxim after witnessing its effects,
if there be such people still alive, I can only say that I hope I may never be
summoned as a Juryman on a Commission of Lunacy whereof they are the subjects;
for I should certainly find them out of their senses, on such evidence alone.
Each ward in this
institution is shaped like a long gallery or hall, with the dormitories of the
patients opening from it on either hand. Here they work, read, play at
skittles, and other games; and, when the weather does not admit of their taking
exercise out of doors, pass the day together. In one of these rooms, seated
calmly, and quite as a matter of course, among a throng of madwomen, black and
white, were the physician's wife and another lady, with a couple of children.
These ladies were graceful and handsome; and it was not difficult to perceive,
at a glance, that even their presence there had a highly beneficial influence on
the patients who were grouped about them.
Leaning her head
against the chimney-piece, with a great assumption of dignity and refinement of
manner, sat an elderly female, in as many scraps of finery as Madge Wildfire
herself. Her head in particular was so strewn with scraps of gauze and cotton
and bits of paper, and had so many queer odds and ends stuck all about it, that
it looked like a bird's nest. She was radiant with imaginary jewels; wore a
rich pair of undoubted gold spectacles; and gracefully dropped upon her lap, as
we approached, a very old, greasy newspaper, in which I dare say she had been
reading an account of her own presentation at some Foreign Court.
I have been thus
particular in describing her, because she will serve to exemplify the physician's
manner of acquiring and retaining the confidence of his patients.
"This," he
said aloud, taking me by the hand, and advancing to the fantastic figure with
great politeness--not raising her suspicions by the slightest look or whisper,
or any kind of aside, to me: "this lady is the hostess of this mansion,
sir. It belongs to her. Nobody else has anything whatever to do with it. It is
a large establishment, as you see, and requires a great number of attendants.
She lives, you observe, in the very first style. She is kind enough to receive
my visits, and to permit my wife and family to reside here; for which, it is
hardly necessary to say, we are much indebted to her. She is exceedingly
courteous, you perceive,"--on this hint she bowed condescendingly,--"
and will permit me to have the pleasure of introducing you: a gentleman from
England, ma'am: newly arrived from England, after a very tempestuous passage:
Mr. Dickens--the lady of the house!"
We exchanged the most
dignified salutations with profound gravity and respect, and so went on. The
rest of the madwomen seemed to understand the joke perfectly (not only in this
case, but in all the others, except their own), and to be highly amused by it.
The nature of their several kinds of insanity was made known to me in the same
way, and we left each of them in high good humour. Not only is a thorough
confidence established, by these means, between physician and patient, in
respect of the nature and extent of their hallucinations, but it is easy to
understand that opportunities are afforded for seizing any moment of reason, to
startle them by placing their own delusion before them in its most incongruous
and ridiculous light.
Every patient in this
asylum sits down to dinner every day with a knife and fork; and in the midst of
them sits the gentleman, whose manner of dealing with his charges I have just
described. At every meal, moral influence alone restrains the more violent
among them from cutting the throats of the rest; but the effect of that influence
is reduced to an absolute certainty, and is found, even as a means of
restraint, to say nothing of it as a means of cure, a hundred times more
efficacious than all the strait-waistcoats, fetters, and handcuffs that
ignorance, prejudice, and cruelty have manufactured since the creation of the
world.
In the labour
department, every patient is as freely trusted with the tools of his trade as
if he were a sane man. In the garden, and on the farm, they work with spades,
rakes, and hoes. For amusement, they walk, run, fish, paint, read, and ride out
to take the air in carriages provided for the purpose. They have among
themselves a sewing society to make clothes for the poor, which holds meetings,
passes resolutions, never comes to fisticuffs or bowie-knives, as sane
assemblies have been known to do elsewhere; and conducts all its proceedings
with the greatest decorum. The irritability, which would otherwise be expended
on their own flesh, clothes, and furniture, is dissipated in these pursuits.
They are cheerful, tranquil, and healthy.
Once a week they have a
ball, in which the Doctor and his family, with all the nurses and attendants,
take an active part. Dances and marches are performed alternately, to the
enlivening strains of a piano; and now and then some gentleman or lady (whose
proficiency has been previously ascertained) obliges the company with a song;
nor does it ever degenerate, at a tender crisis, into a screech or a howl;
wherein, I must confess, I should have thought the danger lay. At an early hour
they all meet together for these festive purposes; at þþeight o'clock
refreshments are served; and at nine they separate.
Immense politeness and
good-breeding are observed throughout. They all take their tone from the
Doctor; and he moves a very Chesterfield among the company. Like other
assemblies, these entertainments afford a fruitful topic of conversation among
the ladies for some days; and the gentlemen are so anxious to shine on these
occasions, that they have been sometimes found "practicing their
steps" in private, to cut a more distinguished figure in the dance.
It is obvious that one
great feature of this system is the inculcation and encouragement, even among
such unhappy persons, of a decent self-respect. Something of the same spirit
pervades all the Institutions at South Boston.
There is the House of
Industry. In that branch of it which is devoted to the reception of old or
otherwise helpless paupers, these words are painted on the walls: "WORTHY
OF NOTICE. SELF-GOVERNMENT, QUIETUDE, AND PEACE ARE BLESSINGS." It is not
assumed and taken for granted that, being there, they must be evil-disposed and
wicked people, before whose vicious eyes it is necessary to flourish threats
and harsh restraints. They are met at the very threshold with this mild appeal.
All within doors is very plain and simple, as it ought to be, but arranged with
a view to peace and comfort. It costs no more than any other plan of
arrangement, but it bespeaks an amount of consideration for those who are
reduced to seek a shelter there, which puts them at once upon their gratitude
and good behaviour. Instead of being parcelled out in great, long, rambling
wards, where a certain amount of weazen life may mope, and pine, and shiver all
day long, the building is divided into separate rooms, each with its share of
light and air. In these the better kind of paupers live. They have a motive for
exertion and becoming pride, in the desire to make these little chambers
comfortable and decent. I do not remember one but it was clean and neat, and
had its plant or two upon the window-sill, or row of crockery upon the shelf,
or small display of coloured prints upon the whitewashed wall, or, perhaps, its
wooden clock behind the door.
The orphans and young
children are in an adjoining building; separate from this, but a part of the
same Institution. Some are such little creatures that the stairs are of
Lilliputian measurement, fitted to their tiny strides. The same consideration
for their years and weakness is expressed in their very seats, which are
perfect curiosities, and look like articles of furniture for a pauper doll's
house. I can imagine the glee of our Poor-Law Commissioners at the notion of
these seats having arms and backs; but small spines being of older date than
their occupation of the Board-room at Somerset House, I thought even this
provision very merciful and kind.
Here, again, I was
greatly pleased with the inscriptions on the wall, which were scraps of plain
morality, easily remembered and understood: such as "Love one another
"--"God remembers the smallest creature in his creation:" and
straightforward advice of that nature. The books and tasks of these smallest of
scholars were adapted, in the same judicious manner, to their childish powers.
When we had examined these lessons, four morsels of girls (of whom one was
blind) sang a little song about the merry month of May, which I thought (being
extremely dismal) would have suited an English November better. That done, we
went to see their sleeping-rooms on the floor above, in which the arrangements
were no less excellent and gentle than those we had seen below. And after
observing that the teachers were of a class and character well suited to the
spirit of the place, I took leave of the infants with a lighter heart than ever
I have taken leave of pauper infants yet.
Connected with the
House of Industry, there is also a Hospital, which was in the best order, and
had, I am glad to say, many beds unoccupied. It had one fault, however, which
is common to all American interiors: the presence of the eternal, accursed,
suffocating, red-hot demon of a stove, whose breath would blight the purest air
under Heaven.
There are two
establishments for boys in this same neigbourhood. One is called the Boylston
School, and is an asylum for neglected and indigent boys who have committed no
crime, but who, in the ordinary course of things, would very soon be purged of
that distinction if they were not taken from the hungry streets and sent here.
The other is a House of Reformation for Juvenile Offenders. They are both under
the same roof, but the two classes of boys never come in contact.
The Boylston boys, as
may be readily supposed, have very much the advantage of the others in point of
personal appearance. They were in their schoolroom when I came upon them, and
answered correctly, without book, such questions as where was England; how far
was it; what was its population; its capital city; its form of government; and
so forth. They sang a song, too, about a farmer sowing his seed: with corresponding
action at such parts as þþtis thus he sows,þ "he turns him round,"
"he claps his hands;" which gave it greater interest for them, and
accustomed them to act together in an orderly manner. They appeared exceedingly
well taught, and not better taught than fed; for a more chubby-looking,
full-waistcoated set of boys I never saw.
The juvenile offenders
had not such pleasant faces by a great deal, and in this establishment there
were many boys of colour. I saw them first at their work (basket-making, and
the manufacture of palm-leaf hats), afterwards in their school, where they sang
a chorus in praise of Liberty: an odd, and, one would think, rather
aggravating, theme for prisoners. These boys were divided into four classes,
each denoted by a numeral, worn on a badge upon the arm. On the arrival of a
new-comer, he is put into the fourth or lowest class, and left, by good
behaviour, to work his way up into the first. The design and object of this
Institution is to reclaim the youthful criminal by firm, but kind and
judicious, treatment; to make his prison a place of purification and
improvement, not of demoralisation and corruption; to impress upon him that
there is but one path, and that one sober industry, which can ever lead him to
happiness; to teach him how it may be trodden, if his footsteps have never yet
been led that way; and to lure him back to it, if they have strayed: in a word,
to snatch him from destruction, and restore him to society a penitent and
useful member. The importance of such an establishment, in every point of view,
and with reference to every consideration of humanity and social policy,
requires no comment.
One other establishment
closes the catalogue. It is the House of Correction for the State, in which
silence is strictly maintained, but where the prisoners have the comfort and
mental relief of seeing each other, and of working together. This is the
improved system of Prison Discipline which we have imported into England, and
which has been in successful operation among us for some years past.
America, as a new and
not over-populated country, has in all her prisons the one great advantage of
being enabled to find useful and profitable work for the inmates: whereas, with
us, the prejudice against prison labour is naturally very strong, and almost
insurmountable, when honest men, who have not offended against the laws, are
frequently doomed to seek employment in vain. Even in the United States, the
principle of bringing convict labour and free labour into a competition which must
obviously be to the disadvantage of the latter, has already found many
opponents, whose number is not likely to diminish with access of years.
For this very reason,
though, our best prisons would seem at the first glance to be better conducted
than those of America. The treadmill is accompanied with little or no noise;
five hundred men may pick oakum in the same room without a sound; and both
kinds of labour admit of such keen and vigilant superintendence, as will render
even a word of personal communication among the prisoners almost impossible. On
the other hand, the noise of the loom, the forge, the carpenter's hammer, or
the stonemason's saw greatly favours those opportunities of
intercourse--hurried and brief, no doubt, but opportunities still--which these
several kinds of work, by rendering it necessary for men to be employed very
near to each other, and often side by side, without any barrier or partition
between them, in their very nature present. A visitor, too, requires to reason
and reflect a little, before the sight of a number of men engaged in ordinary
labour, such as he is accustomed to out of doors, will impress him half as
strongly as the contemplation of the same persons in the same place and garb
would, if they were occupied in some task, marked and degraded everywhere as
belonging only to felons in gaols. In an American State prison, or house of
correction, I found it difficult at first to persuade myself that I was really
in a gaol: a place of ignominious punishment and endurance. And to this hour I
very much question whether the humane boast, that it is not like one, has its
root in the true wisdom or philosophy of the matter.
I hope I may not be
misunderstood on this subject, for it is one in which I take a strong and deep
interest. I incline as little to the sickly feeling which makes every canting
lie or maudlin speech of a notorious criminal a subject of newspaper report and
general sympathy, as I do to those good old customs of the good old times which
made England, even so recently as in the reign of the Third King George, in
respect of her criminal code and her prison regulations, one of the most
bloody-minded and barbarous countries on the earth. If I thought it would do
any good to the rising generation, I would cheerfully give my consent to the
disinterment of the bones of any genteel highwayman (the more genteel, the more
cheerfully), and to their exposure, piecemeal, on any sign-post, gate, or
gibbet that might be deemed a good elevation for the purpose. My reason is as well
convinced that these gentry were utterly worthless and debauched villains, as
it is that the laws and gaols hardened them in their evil courses, or that
their wonderful escapes were effected by the prison turnkeys who, in those
admirable days, had always been felons themselves, and were, to the last, their
bosom-friends and pot-companions. At the same time, I know, as all men do or
should, that the subject of Prison Discipline is one of the highest importance
to any community; and that, in her sweeping reform and bright example to other
countries on this head,
America has shown great
wisdom, great benevolence, and exalted policy. In contrasting her system with
that which we have modelled upon it, I merely seek to show that, with all its
drawbacks, ours has some advantages of its own. *
The House of Correction
which has led to these remarks is not walled, like other prisons, but is
palisaded round about with tall rough stakes, something after the manner of an
enclosure for keeping elephants in, as we see it represented in Eastern prints
and pictures. The prisoners wear a parti-coloured dress; and those who are
sentenced to hard labour work at nail-making or stone-cutting. When I was
there, the latter class of labourers were employed upon the stone for a new
Custom House in course of erection at Boston. They appeared to shape it
skillfully and with expedition, though there were very few among them (if any)
who had not acquired the art within the prison gates.
The women, all in one
large room, were employed in making light clothing for New Orleans and the
Southern States. They did their work in silence, like the men; and, like them,
were overlooked by the person contracting for their labour, or by some agent of
his appointment. In addition to this, they are every moment liable to be
visited by the prison officers appointed for that purpose.
The arrangements for
cooking, washing of clothes, and so forth, are much upon the plan of those I
have seen at home. Their mode of bestowing the prisoners at night (which is of
general adoption) differs from ours, and is both simple and effective. In the
centre of a lofty area, lighted by windows in the four walls, are five tiers of
cells, one above the other; each tier having before it a light iron gallery,
attainable by stairs of the same construction and material; excepting the lower
one, which is on the ground. Behind these, back to back with them, and facing
the opposite wall, are five corresponding rows of cells, accessible by similar
means: so that, supposing the prisoners locked up in their cells, an officer
stationed on the ground, with his back to the wall, has half their number under
his eye at once; the remaining half being equally under the observation of
another officer on the opposite side; and all in one great apartment. Unless
this watch be corrupted or sleeping on his post, it is impossible for a man to
escape; for even in the event of his forcing the iron door of his cell without
noise (which is exceedingly improbable), the moment he appears outside, and
steps into that one of the five galleries on which it is situated, he must be
plainly and fully visible to the officer below. Each of these cells holds a
small truckle-bed, in which one prisoner sleeps; never more. It is small, of
course; and the door being not solid, but grated, and without blind or curtain,
the prisoner within is at all times exposed to the observation and inspection
of any guard who may pass along that tier at any hour or minute of the night.
Every day, the prisoners receive their dinner, singly, through a trap in the
kitchen wall; and each man carries his to his sleeping cell to eat it, where he
is locked up alone, for that purpose, one hour. The whole of this arrangement
struck me as being admirable; and I hope that the next new prison we erect in
England may be built on this plan.
I was given to
understand that in this prison no swords or fire-arms, or even cudgels, are
kept; nor is it probable that, so long as its present excellent management
continues, any weapon, offensive or defensive, will ever be required within its
bounds.
Such are the
Institutions at South Boston! In all of them, thee unfortunate or degenerate
citizens of the State are carefully instructed in their duties both to God and
man; are surrounded by all reasonable means of comfort and happiness that their
condition will admit of; are appealed to as members of the great human family,
however afflicted, indigent, or fallen; are ruled by the strong Heart, and not
by the strong (though immeasurably weaker) Hand. I have described them at some
length: firstly, because their worth demanded it; and secondly, because I mean
to take them for a model, and to content myself with saying of others we may
come to, whose design and purpose are the same, that in this or that respect
they practically fail, or differ.
I wish by this account
of them, imperfect in its execution, but, in its just intention, honest, I
could hope to convey to my readers one hundredth part of the gratification the
sights I have described afforded me.
---------------------------------------
To an Englishman,
accustomed to the paraphernalia of Westminster Hall, an American Court of Law
is as odd a sight as, I suppose, an English Court of Law would be to an
American. Except in the Supreme Court at Washington (where the judges wear a
plain black robe), there is no such thing as a wig or gown connected with the
administration of justice. The gentlemen of the bar, being barristers and
attorneys too (for there is no division of those functions as in England), are
no more removed from their clients than attorneys in our Court for the Relief
of Insolvent Debtors are from theirs. The jury are quite at home, and make
themselves as comfortable as circumstances will permit. The witness is so
little elevated above, or put aloof from, the crowd in the court, that a
stranger entering during a pause in the proceedings would find it difficult to
pick him out from the rest. And if it chanced to be a criminal trial, his eyes,
in nine cases out of ten, would wander to the dock in search of the prisoner in
vain; for that gentleman would most likely be lounging among the most
distinguished ornaments of the legal profession, whispering suggestions in his
counsel's ear, or making a toothpick out of an old quill with his penknife.
I could not but notice
these differences when I visited the courts at Boston. I was much surprised at
first, too, to observe that the counsel who interrogated the witness under
examination at the time did so sitting. But seeing that he was also occupied in
writing down the answers, and remembering that he was alone, and had no
"junior," I quickly consoled myself with the reflection that law was
not quite so expensive an article here as at home; and that the absence of
sundry formalities, which we regard as indispensable, had doubtless a very
favourable influence upon the bill of costs.
In every court ample
and commodious provision is made for the accommodation of the citizens. This is
the case all through America. In every Public Institution, the right of the
people to attend, and to have an interest in the proceedings, is most fully and
distinctly recognised. There are no grim door-keepers to dole out their tardy
civility by the sixpennyworth; nor is there, I sincerely believe, any insolence
of office of any kind. Nothing national is exhibited for money; and no public
officer is a showman. We have begun, of late years, to imitate this good
example. I hope we shall continue to do so; and that, in the fulness of time,
even deans and chapters may be converted.
In the civil court an
action was trying for damages sustained in some accident upon a railway. The
witnesses had been examined, and counsel was addressing the jury. The learned
gentleman (like a few of his English brethren) was desperately long-winded, and
had a remarkable capacity of saying the same thing over and over again. His
great theme was Warren the engine driver," whom he pressed into the
service of every sentence he uttered. I listened to him for about a quarter of
an hour; and, coming out of court at the expiration of that time, without tho
faintest ray of enlightenment as to the merits of the case, felt as if I were
at home again.
In the prisoners' cell,
waiting to be examined by the magistrate on a charge of theft, was a boy. This
lad, instead of being committed to a common gaol, would be sent to the asylum
at South Boston, and there taught a trade; and, in the course of time, he would
be bound apprentice to some respectable master. Thus his detection in this
offence, instead of being the prelude to a life of infamy and a miserable
death, would lead, there was a reasonable hope, to his being reclaimed from
vice, and becoming a worthy member of society.
I am by no means a
wholesale admirer of our legal solemnities, many of which impress me as being
exceedingly ludicrous. Strange as it may seem, too, there is undoubtedly a
degree of protection in the wig and gown--a dismissal of individual
responsibility in dressing for the part--which encourages that insolent bearing
and language, and that gross perversion of the office of a pleader for The
Truth, so frequent in our courts of law. Still, I cannot help doubting whether
America, in her desire to shake off the absurdities and abuses of the old
system, may not have gone too far into the opposite extreme; and whether it is
not desirable, especially in the small community of a city like this, where
each man knows the other, to surround the administration of justice with some
artificial barriers against the "Hail fellow, well met" deportment of
every-day life. All the aid it can have in the very high character and ability
of the Bench, not only here, but elsewhere, it has, and well deserves to have;
but it may need something more: not to impress the thoughtful and the well
informed, but the ignorant and heedless; a class which includes some prisoners
and many witnesses. These institutions were established, no doubt, upon the
principle that those who had so large a share in making the laws would
certainly respect them. But experience has proved this hope to be fallacious;
for no men know better than the judges of America, that on the occasion of any
great popular excitement the law is powerless, and cannot, for the time, assert
its own supremacy.
The tone of society in
Boston is one of perfect politeness, courtesy, and good-breeding. The ladies
are unquestionably very beautiful--in face: but there I am compelled to stop.
Their education is much as with us; neither better nor worse. I had heard some
very marvelous stories in this respect; but not believing them, was not
disappointed. Blue ladies there are in Boston; but, like philosophers of that
colour and sex in most other latitudes, they rather desire to be thought superior
than to be so. Evangelical ladies there are, likewise, whose attachment to the
forms of religion, and horror of theatrical entertainments, are most exemplary.
Ladies who have a passion for attending lectures are to be found among all
classes and all conditions. In the kind of provincial life which prevails in
cities such as this, the Pulpit has great influence. The peculiar province of
the Pulpit in New England (always excepting the Unitarian ministry) would
appear to be the denouncement of all innocent and rational amusements. The
church, the chapel, and the lecture-room are the only means of excitement
excepted; and to the church, the chapel, and the lecture-room the ladies resort
in crowds.
Wherever religion is
resorted to as a strong drink, and as an escape from the dull, monotonous round
of home, those of its ministers who pepper the highest will be the surest to
please. They who strew the Eternal Path with the greatest amount of brimstone
and who most ruthlessly tread down the flowers and leaves that grow by the
wayside, will be voted the most righteous; and they who enlarge with the
greatest pertinacity on the difficulty of getting into heaven will be
considered, by all true believers, certain of going there: though it would be
hard to say by what process of reasoning this conclusion is arrived at. It is
so at home, and it is so abroad. With regard to the other means of excitement,
the Lecture, it has at least thee merit of being always new. One lecture treads
so quickly on the heels of another, that none are remembered; and the course of
this month may be safely repeated next, with its charm of novelty unbroken, and
its interest unabated.
The fruits of the earth
have their growth in corruption. Out of the rottenness of these things there
has sprung up in Boston a sect of philosophers known as Transcendentalists. On
inquiring what this appellation might be supposed to signify, I was given to
understand that whatever was unintelligible would be certainly transcendental.
Not deriving much comfort from this elucidation, I pursued the inquiry still
further, and found that the Transcendentalists are followers of my friend Mr.
Carlyle, or I should rather say, of a follower of his, Mr. Ralph Waldo Emerson.
This gentleman has written a volume of Essays, in which, among much that is
dreamy and fanciful (if he will pardon me for saying so), there is much more
that is true and manly, honest and bold. Transcendentalism has its occasional
vagaries (what school has not?), but it has good healthful qualities in spite
of them; not least among the number a hearty disgust of Cant, and an aptitude
to detect her in all the million varieties of her everlasting wardrobe. And
therefore, if I were a Bostonian, I think I would be a Transcendentalist.
The only preacher I
heard in Boston was Mr. Taylor, who addresses himself peculiarly to seamen, and
who was once a mariner himself. I found his chapel down among the shipping, in
one of the narrow, old, water-side streets, with a gay blue flag waving freely
from its roof. In the gallery opposite to the pulpit were a little choir of
male and female singers, a violoncello, and a violin. The preacher already sat
in the pulpit; which was raised on pillars, and ornamented behind him with
painted drapery of a lively and somewhat theatrical appearance. He looked a
weather-beaten, hard-featured man, of about six or eight and fifty; with deep
lines graven as it were into his face, dark hair, and a stern, keen eye. Yet
the general character of his countenance was pleasant and agreeable.
The service commenced
with a hymn, to which succeeded an extemporary prayer. It had the fault of
frequent repetition, incidental to all such prayers; but it was plain and
comprehensive in its doctrines, and breathed a tone of general sympathy and
charity, which is not so commonly a characteristic of this form of address to
the Deity as it might be. That done, he opened his discourse, taking for his
text a passage from the Song of Solomon, laid upon the desk before the
commencement of the service by some unknown member of the congregation:
"Who is this coming up from the wilderness, leaning on the arm of her
beloved?"
He handled his text in
all kinds of ways, and twisted it into all manner of shapes; but always
ingeniously, and with a rude eloquence, well adapted to the comprehension of
his hearers. Indeed, if I be not mistaken, he studied their sympathies and
understandings much more than the display of his own powers. His imagery was
all drawn from the sea, and from the incidents of a seaman's life; and was
often remarkably good. He spoke to them of "that glorious man, Lord
Nelson," and of Collingwood; and drew nothing in, as the saying is, by the
head and shoulders, but brought it to bear upon his purpose naturally, and with
a sharp mind to its effect. Sometimes, when much excited with his subject, he
had an odd way--compounded of John Bunyan, and Balfour of Burley--of taking his
great quarto Bible under his arm, and pacing up and down the pulpit with it;
looking steadily down, meantime, into the midst of the congregation. Thus, when
he applied his text to the first assemblage of his hearers, and pictured the
wonder of the church at their presumption in forming a congregation among
themselves, he stopped short with his Bible under his arm in the manner I have
described, and pursued his discourse after this manner:
"Who are
these--who are they--who are these fellows? Where do they come from? Where are
they going to?--Come from! What's the answer?"--leaning out of the pulpit,
and pointing downward with his right hand: "From below!"--starting
back again, and looking at the sailors before him: "from below, my
brethren. From under the hatches of sin, battened down above you by the evil
one. That's where you came from!" --a walk up and down the pulpit:
"and where are you going?"--stopping abruptly: "where are you
going? Aloft!"--very softly, and pointing upward:
"aloft!"--louder: "aloft!"--louder still: "that's
where you are going--with a fair wind,--all taut and trim, steering direct for
Heaven in its glory, where there are no storms or foul weather, and where the
wicked cease from troubling, and the weary are at rest."--Another walk:
"That's where you're going to, my friends. That's it. That's the place.
That's the port. That's the haven. It's a blessed harbour--still water there,
in all changes of the winds and tides; no driving ashore upon the rocks, or
slipping your cables and running out to sea, there: Peace--Peace--Peace--all
peace!"--Another walk, and patting the Bible under his left arm:
"What! These fellows are coming from the wilderness, are they? Yes. From
the dreary, blighted wilderness of Iniquity, whose only crop is Death. But do
they lean upon anything--do they lean upon nothing, these poor
seamen?"--Three raps upon the Bible: "Oh yes!--Yes.--They lean upon
the arm of their Beloved" -- three more raps: "upon the arm of their
Beloved"--three more, and a walk: "Pilot, guiding-star, and compass,
all in one, to all hands--here it is"--three more: "here it is. They
can do their seaman's duty manfully, and be easy in their minds in the utmost
peril and danger, with this"--two more: "they can come, even these
poor fellows can come, from the wilderness, leaning on the arm of their
Beloved, and go up--up--up!"--raising his hand higher and higher at every
repetition of the word, so that he stood with it at last stretched above his
head, regarding them in a strange, rapt manner, and pressing the book
triumphantly to his breast, until he gradually subsided into some other portion
of his discourse.
I have cited this,
rather as an instance of the preacher's eccentricities than his merits, though,
taken in connection with his look and manner, and the character of his
audience, even this was striking. It is possible, however, that my favourable
impression of him may have been greatly influenced and strengthened, firstly,
by his impressing upon his hearers that the true observance of religion was not
inconsistent with a cheerful deportment and an exact discharge of the duties of
their station, which, indeed, it scrupulously required of them; and secondly,
by his cautioning them not to set up any monopoly in Paradise and its mercies.
I never heard these two points so wisely touched (if, indeed, I have ever heard
them touched at all) by any preacher of that kind before.
Having passed the time
I spent in Boston in making myself acquainted with these things, in settling
the course I should take in my future travels, and in mixing constantly with
its society, I am not aware that I have any occasion to prolong this chapter. Such
of its social customs as I have not mentioned, however, may be told in a very
few words.
The usual dinner hour
is two o'clock. A dinner-party takes place at five; and at an evening party
they seldom sup later than eleven; so that it goes hard but one gets home, even
from a rout, by midnight. I never could find out any difference between a party
at Boston and a party in London, saving that at the former place all assemblies
are held at more rational hours; that the conversation may possibly be a little
louder and more cheerful; that a guest is usually expected to ascend to the
very top of the house to take his cloak off; that he is certain to see, at
every dinner, an unusual amount of poultry on the table; and at every supper,
at least two mighty bowls of hot stewed oysters, in any one of which a
half-grown Duke of Clarence might be smothered easily.
There are two theatres
in Boston, of good size and construction, but sadly in want of patronage. The
few ladies who resort to them sit, as of right, in the front rows of the boxes.
The bar is a large room
with a stone floor, and there people stand and smoke, and lounge about, all the
evening: dropping in and out as the humour takes them. There, too, the stranger
is initiated into the mysteries of Gin-sling, Cocktail, Sangaree, Mint Julep,
Sherry Cobbler, Timber Doodle, and other rare drinks. The house is full of
boarders, both married and single, many of whom sleep upon the premises, and
contract by the week for their board and lodging: the charge for which
diminishes as they go nearer the sky to roost. A public table is laid in a very
handsome hall for breakfast, and for dinner, and for supper. The party sitting
down together to these meals will vary in number from one to two hundred:
sometimes more. The advent of each of these epochs in the day is proclaimed by
an awful gong, which shakes the very window frames as it reverberates through
the house, and horribly disturbs nervous foreigners. There is an ordinary for
ladies, and an ordinary for gentlemen.
In our private room the
cloth could not, for any earthly consideration, have been laid for dinner
without a huge glass dish of cranberries in the middle of the table; and
breakfast would have been no breakfast unless the principal dish were a
deformed beef-steak with a great flat bone in the centre, swimming in hot
butter, and sprinkled with the very blackest of all possible pepper. Our
bedroom was spacious and airy, but (like every bedroom on this side of the
Atlantic) very bare of furniture, having no curtains to the French bedstead or
to the window. It had one unusual luxury, however, in the shape of a wardrobe
of painted wood, something smaller than an English watch-box: or, if this
comparison should be insufficient to convey a just idea of its dimensions, they
may be estimated from the fact of my having lived for fourteen days and nights
in the firm belief that it was a shower-bath.
* Apart from profit
made by the useful labour of prisoners, which we can never hope to realise to
any great extent, and which it is perhaps not expedient for us to try to gain,
there are two prisons in London, in all respects equal, and in some decidedly
superior, to any I saw, or have ever heard or read of, in America. One is the
Tothill Fields Bridewell, conducted by Lieutenant A. F. Tracey, R.N.; the other
the Middlesex House of Correction, superintended by Mr. Chesterton. This
gentleman also holds an appointment in the Public Service. Both are enlightened
and superior men: and it would be as difficult to find persons better qualified
for the functions they discharge with firmness, zeal, intelligence, and
humanity, as it would be to exceed the perfect order and arrangement of the
institutions they govern.
BEFORE leaving Boston,
I devoted one day to an excursion to Lowell. I assign a separate chapter to
this visit; not because I am about to describe it at any great length, but
because I remember it as a thing by itself, and am desirous that my readers
should do the same.
I made acquaintance
with an American railroad on this occasion, for the first time. As these works
are pretty much alike all through the States, their general characteristics are
easily described.
There are no first and
second class carriages as with us; but there is a gentlemen's car and a ladies'
car: the main distinction between which is, that in the first everybody smokes;
and in the second, nobody does. As a black man never travels with a white one,
there is also a negro car; which is a great, blundering, clumsy chest, such as
Gulliver put to sea in from the kingdom of Brobdingnag. There is a great deal
of jolting, a great deal of noise, a great deal of wall, not much window, a
locomotive engine, a shriek, and a bell.
The cars are like
shabby omnibuses, but larger: holding thirty, forty, fifty people. The seats,
instead of stretching from end to end, are placed crosswise. Each seat holds
two persons There is a long row of them on each side of the caravan, a narrow
passage up the middle, and a door at both ends. In the centre of the carriage
there is usually a stove, fed with charcoal or anthracite coal; which is for
the most part red-hot. It is insufferably close; and you see the hot air
fluttering between yourself and any other object you may happen to look at,
like the ghost of smoke.
In the ladies' car
there are a great many gentlemen who have ladies with them. There are also a
great many ladies who have nobody with them: for any lady may travel alone,
from one end of the United States to the other, and be certain of the most
courteous and considerate treatment everywhere. The conductor, or check-taker,
or guard, or whatever he may be, wears no uniform. He walks up and down the
car, and in and out of it, as his fancy dictates; leans against the door with
his hands in his pockets, and stares at you, if you chance to be a stranger; or
enters into conversation with the passengers about him. A great many newspapers
are pulled out, and a few of them are read. Everybody talks to you, or to
anybody else who hits his fancy. If you are an Englishman, he expects that that
railroad is pretty much like an English railroad. If you say "No," he
says "Yes?" (interrogatively), and asks in what respect they differ.
You enumerate the heads of difference, one by one, and he says "Yes?"
(still interrogatively) to each. Then he guesses that you don't travel faster
in England; and on your replying that you do, says "Yes?" again
(still interrogatively), and, it is quite evident, don't believe it. After a
long pause he remarks, partly to you, and partly to the knob on the top of his
stick, that "Yankees are reckoned to be considerable of a go-ahead people
too;" upon which you say "Yes," and then he says "Yes"
again (affirmatively this time); and, upon your looking out of window, tells
you that behind that hill, and some three miles from the next station, there is
a clever town in a smart lo-ca-tion, where he expects you have con-cluded to
stop. Your answer in the negative naturally leads to more questions in reference
to your intended route (always pronounced rout); and wherever you are going,
you invariably learn that you can't get there without immense difficulty and
danger, and that all the great sights are somewhere else.
If a lady take a fancy
to any male passenger's seat, the gentleman who accompanies her gives him
notice of the fact, and he immediately vacates it with great politeness.
Politics are much discussed; so are banks, so is cotton. Quiet people avoid the
question of the Presidency, for there will be a new election in three years and
a half, and party feeling runs very high: the great constitutional feature of
this institution being, that directly the acrimony of the last election is
over, the acrimony of the next one begins; which is an unspeakable comfort to
all strong politicians and true lovers of their country: that is to say, to
ninety-nine men and boys out of every ninety-nine and a quarter.
Except when a branch
road joins the main one, there is seldom more than one track of rails; so that
the road is very narrow, and the view, where there is a deep cutting, by no
means extensive. When there is not, the character of the scenery is always the
same. Mile after mile of stunted trees: some hewn down by the axe, some blown
down by the wind, some half fallen and resting on their neighbours, many mere
logs half hidden in the swamp, others mouldered away to spongy chips. The very
soil of the earth is made up of minute fragments such as these; each pool of
stagnant water has its crust of vegetable rottenness; on every side there are
the boughs, and trunks, and stumps of trees, in every possible stage of decay,
decomposition, and neglect. Now you emerge for a few brief minutes on an open
country, glittering with some bright lake or pool, broad as many an English
river, but so small here that it scarcely has a name; now catch hasty glimpses
of a distant town, with its clean white houses and their cool piazzas, its prim
New England church and school-house; when whir-r-r-r! almost before you have
seen them, comes the same dark screen: the stunted trees, the stumps, the logs,
the stagnant water--all so like the last that you seem to have been transported
back again by magic.
The train calls at
stations in the woods, where the wild impossibility of anybody having the
smallest reason to get out is only to be equalled by the apparently desperate
hopelessness of there being anybody to get in. It rushes across the turnpike
road, where there is no gate, no policeman, no signal: nothing but a rough
wooden arch, on which is painted "WHEN THE BELL RINGS, LOOK OUT FOR THE
LOCOMOTIVE." On it whirls headlong, dives through the woods again, emerges
in the light, clatters over frail arches, rumbles upon the heavy ground, shoots
beneath a wooden bridge which intercepts the light for a second like a wink,
suddenly awakens all the slumbering echoes in the main street of a large town,
and dashes on hap-hazard, pell-mell, neck or nothing, down the middle of the
road. There--with mechanics working at their trades, and people leaning from
their doors and windows, and boys flying kites and playing marbles, and men
smoking, and women talking, and children crawling, and pigs burrowing, and
unaccustomed horses plunging and rearing, close to the very rails--there--on,
on, on--tears the mad dragon of an engine with its train of cars; scattering in
all directions a shower of burning sparks from its wood fire; screeching,
hissing, yelling, panting, until at last the thirsty monster stops beneath a
covered way to drink, the people cluster round, and you have time to breathe
again.
I was met at the
station at Lowell by a gentleman intimately connected with the management of
the factories there; and gladly putting myself under his guidance, drove off at
once to that quarter of the town in which the works, the object of my visit,
were situated. Although only just of age--for, if my recollection serve me, it
has been a manufacturing town barely one-and-twenty years--Lowell is a large,
populous, thriving place. Those indications of its youth which first attract
the eye, give it a quaintness and oddity of character which, to a visitor from
the old country, is amusing enough. It was a very dirty winter's day, and
nothing in the whole town looked old to me, except the mud, which in some parts
was almost knee deep, and might have been deposited there on the subsiding of
the waters after the Deluge. In one place there was a new wooden church, which,
having no steeple, and being yet unpainted, looked like an enormous
packing-case without any direction upon it. In another there was a large hotel,
whose walls and colonnades were so crisp, and thin, and slight, that it had
exactly the appearance of being built with cards. I was careful not to draw my
breath as we passed, and trembled when I saw a workman come out upon the roof,
lest with one thoughtless stamp of his foot he should crush the structure
beneath him, and bring it rattling down. The very river that moves the
machinery in the mills (for they are all worked by water power) seems to
acquire a new character from the fresh buildings of bright red brick and
painted wood among which it takes its course; and to be as light-headed,
thoughtless, and brisk a young river, in its murmurings and tumblings, as one
would desire to see. One would swear that every "Bakery,"
"Grocery," and "Bookbindery," and other kind of store took
its shutters down for the first time, and started in business yesterday. The
golden pestles and mortars fixed as signs upon the sun-blind frames outside the
Druggists' appear to have been just turned out of the United States Mint; and
when I saw a baby of some week or ten days old in a woman's arms at a street
corner, I found myself unconsciously wondering where it came from: never
supposing for an instant that it could have been born in such a young town as
that.
There are several
factories in Lowell, each of which belongs to what we should term a Company of
Proprietors, but what they call in America a Corporation. I went over several
of these; such as a woollen factory, a carpet factory, and a cotton factory:
examined them in every part; and saw them in their ordinary working aspect,
with no preparation of any kind, or departure from their ordinary every-day
proceedings. I may add that I am well acquainted with our manufacturing towns in
England, and have visited many mills in Manchester and elsewhere in the same
manner.
I happened to arrive at
the first factory just as the dinner hour was over, and the girls were
returning to their work; indeed, the stairs of the mill were thronged with them
as I ascended. They were all well dressed, but not, to my thinking, above their
condition: for I like to see the humbler classes of society careful of their
dress and appearance, and even, if they please, decorated with such little
trinkets as come within the compass of their means. Supposing it confined
within limits, I would always encourage this kind of pride, as a worthy element
of self-respect, in any person I employed; and should no more be deterred from
doing so, because some wretched female referred her fall to a love of dress,
than I would allow my construction of the real intent and meaning of the
Sabbath to be influenced by any warning to the well-disposed, founded on his
backslidings on that particular day, which might emanate from the rather
doubtful authority of a murderer in Newgate.
These girls, as I have
said, were all well dressed: and that phrase necessarily includes extreme
cleanliness. They had serviceable bonnets, good warm cloaks and shawls; and
were not above clogs and pattens. Moreover, there were places in the mill in
which they could deposit these things without injury; and there were
conveniences for washing. They were healthy in appearance, many of them
remarkably so, and had the manners and deportment of young women: not of
degraded brutes of burden. If I had seen in one of those mills (but I did not,
though I looked for something of this kind with a sharp eye) the most lisping,
mincing, affected, and ridiculous young creature that my imagination could
suggest, I should have thought of the careless, moping, slatternly, degraded,
dull reverse (I have seen that), and should have been still well pleased to
look upon her.
The rooms in which they
worked were as well ordered as themselves. In the windows of some there were
green plants, which were trained to shade the glass; in all, there was as much
fresh air, cleanliness, and comfort as the nature of the occupation would
possibly admit of. Out of so large a number of females, many of whom were only
then just verging upon womanhood, it may be reasonably supposed that some were
delicate and fragile in appearance: no doubt there were. But I solemnly
declare, that from all the crowd I saw in the different factories that day, I
cannot recall or separate one young face that gave me a painful impression; not
one young girl whom, assuming it to be matter of necessity that she should gain
her daily bread by the labour of her hands, I would have removed from those
works if I had had the power.
They reside in various
boarding-houses near at hand. The owners of the mills are particularly careful
to allow no persons to enter upon the possession of these houses, whose
characters have not undergone the most searching and thorough inquiry. Any
complaint that is made against them by the boarders, or by any one else, is
fully investigated; and if good ground of complaint be shown to exist against
them, they are removed, and their occupation is handed over to some more
deserving person. There are a few children employed in these factories, but not
many. The laws of the State forbid their working more than nine months in the
year, and require that they be educated during the other three. For this
purpose there are schools in Lowell; and there are churches and chapels of
various persuasions, in which the young women may observe that form of worship
in which they have been educated.
At some distance from
the factories, and on the highest and pleasantest ground in the neighbourhood,
stands their hospital, or boarding-house for the sick: it is the best house in
those parts, and was built by an eminent merchant for his own residence. Like
that institution at Boston, which I have before described, it is not parcelled
out into wards, but is divided into convenient chambers, each of which has all
the comforts of a very comfortable home. The principal medical attendant
resides under the same roof, and were the patients members of his own family,
they could not be better cared for, or attended with greater gentleness and
consideration. The weekly charge in this establishment for each female patient
is three dollars, or twelve shillings English; but no girl employed by any of
the corporations is ever excluded for want of the means of payment. That they
do not very often want the means may be gathered from the fact, that in July,
1841, no fewer than nine hundred and seventy-eight of these girls were
depositors in the Lowell Savings Bank: the amount of whose joint savings was
estimated at one hundred thousand dollars, or twenty thousand English pounds.
I am now going to state
three facts, which will startle a large class of readers on this side of the
Atlantic very much.
Firstly, there is a
joint-stock piano in a great many of the boarding-houses. Secondly, nearly all
these young ladies subscribe to circulating libraries. Thirdly, they have got
up among themselves a periodical called THE LOWELL OFFERING, "a repository
of original articles, written exclusively by females actively employed in the
mills,"--which is duly printed, published, and sold; and whereof I brought
away from Lowell four hundred good solid pages, which I have read from
beginning to end.
The large class of
readers, startled by these facts, will exclaim, with one voice, "How very
preposterous!" On my deferentially inquiring why, they will answer,
"These things are above their station." In reply to that objection, I
would beg to ask what their station is.
It is their station to
work. And they do work. They labour in these mills, upon an average, twelve
hours a day, which is unquestionably work, and pretty tight work too. Perhaps
it is above their station to indulge in such amusements on any terms. Are we
quite sure that we in England have not formed our ideas of the
"station" of working-people from accustoming ourselves to the contemplation
of that class as they are, and not as they might be? I think that, if we
examine our own feelings, we shall find that the pianos, and the circulating
libraries, and even the Lowell Offering, startle us by their novelty, and not
by their bearing upon any abstract question of right or wrong.
For myself, I know no
station in which, the occupation of to-day cheerfully done and the occupation
of to-morrow cheerfully looked to, any one of these pursuits is not most
humanising and laudable. I know no station which is rendered more endurable to
the person in it, or more safe to the person out of it, by having ignorance for
its associate. I know no station which has a right to monopolise the means of
mutual instruction, improvement, and rational entertainment; or which has ever
continued to be a station very long after seeking to do so.
Of the merits of the
Lowell Offering as a literary production I will only observe, putting entirely
out of sight the fact of the articles having been written by these girls after
the arduous labours of the day, that it will compare advantageously with a
great many English Annuals. It is pleasant to find that many of its Tales are
of the Mills, and of those who work in them; that they inculcate habits of
self-denial and contentment, and teach good doctrines of enlarged benevolence.
A strong feeling for the beauties of nature, as displayed in the solitudes the
writers have left at home, breathes through its pages like wholesome village
air; and though a circulating library is a favourable school for the study of
such topics, it has very scant allusion to fine clothes, fine marriages, fine
houses, or fine life. Some persons might object to the papers being signed
occasionally with rather fine names, but this is an American fashion. One of the
provinces of the State Legislature of Massachusetts is to alter ugly names into
pretty ones, as the children improve upon the tastes of their parents. These
changes costing little or nothing, scores of Mary Annes are solemnly converted
into Bevelinas every session.
It is said that on the
occasion of a visit from General Jackson or General Harrison to this town (I
forget which, but it is not to the purpose), he walked through three miles and
a half of these young ladies, all dressed out with parasols and silk stockings.
But, as I am not aware that any worse consequence ensued than a sudden
looking-up of all the parasols and silk stockings in the market; and perhaps
the Bankruptcy of some Speculative New Englander who bought them all up at any
price, in expectation of a demand that never came; I set no great store by the
circumstance.
In this brief account
of Lowell, and inadequate expression of the gratification it yielded me, and
cannot fail to afford to any foreigner to whom the condition of such people at
home is a subject of interest and anxious speculation, I have carefully
abstained from drawing a comparison between these factories and those of our
own land. Many of the circumstances whose strong influence has been at work for
years in our manufacturing towns have not arisen here; and there is no
manufacturing population in Lowell, so to speak: for these girls (often the
daughters of small farmers) come from other States, remain a few years in the
mills, and then go home for good.
The contrast would be a
strong one, for it would be between the Good and Evil, the living light and
deepest shadow. I abstain from it, because I deem it just to do so. But I only
the more earnestly adjure all those whose eyes may rest on these pages, to
pause and reflect upon the difference between this town and those great haunts
of desperate misery: to call to mind, if they can in the midst of party strife
and squabble, the efforts that must be made to purge them of their suffering
and danger: and last, and foremost, to remember how the precious Time is
rushing by.
I returned at night by
the same railroad, and in the same kind of car. One of the passengers being
exceedingly anxious to expound at great length to my companion (not to me, of
course) the true principles on which books of travel in America should be
written by Englishmen, I feigned to fall asleep. But glancing all the way out
at window from the corners of my eyes, I found abundance of entertainment for
the rest of the ride in watching the effects of the wood fire, which had been
invisible in the morning, but were now brought out in full relief by the
darkness: for we were travelling in a whirlwind of bright sparks, which
showered about us like a storm of fiery snow.
LEAVING Boston on the
afternoon of Saturday, the fifth of February, we proceeded by another railroad
to Worcester: a pretty New England town, where we had arranged to remain under
the hospitable roof of the Governor of the State until Monday morning.
These towns and cities
of New England (many of which would be villages in Old England) are as
favourable specimens of rural America as their people are of rural Americans.
The well-trimmed lawns and green meadows of home are not there; and the grass,
compared with our ornamental plots and pastures, is rank, and rough, and wild:
but delicate slopes of land, gently-swelling hills, wooded valleys, and slender
streams abound. Every little colony of houses has its church and school-house
peeping from among the white roofs and shady trees; every house is the whitest
of the white; every Venetian blind the greenest of the green; every fine day's
sky the bluest of the blue. A sharp dry wind and a slight frost had so hardened
the roads when we alighted at Worcester, that their furrowed tracks were like
ridges of granite. There was the usual aspect of newness on every object, of
course. All the buildings looked as if they had been built and painted that
morning, and could be taken down on Monday with very little trouble. In the
keen evening air, every sharp outline looked a hundred times sharper than ever.
The clean cardboard colonnades had no more perspective than a Chinese bridge on
a teacup, and appeared equally well calculated for use. The razor-like edges of
the
detached cottages
seemed to cut the very wind as it whistled against them, and to send it
smarting on its way with a shriller cry than before. Those slightly-built
wooden dwellings, behind| which the sun was setting with a brilliant lustre,
could be so looked through and through, that the idea of any inhabitant being
able to hide himself from the public gaze, or to have any secrets from the
public eye, was not entertainable for a moment. Even where a blazing fire shone
through the uncurtained windows of some distant house, it had the air of being
newly lighted, and of lacking warmth; and instead of awakening thoughts of a
snug chamber, bright with faces that first saw the light round that same
hearth, and ruddy with warm hangings, it came upon one suggestive of the smell
of new mortar and damp walls.
So I thought, at least,
that evening. Next morning, when the sun was shining brightly, and the clear
church bells were ringing, and sedate people in their best clothes enlivened
the pathway near at hand, and dotted the distant thread of road, there was a
pleasant Sabbath peacefulness on everything which it was good to feel. It would
have been the better for an old church; better still for some old graves; but
as it was, a wholesome repose and tranquillity pervaded the scene, which, after
the restless ocean and the hurried city, had a doubly grateful influence on the
spirits.
We went on next
morning, still by railroad, to Springfield. From that place to Hartford,
whither we were bound, is a distance of only five-and-twenty miles, but at that
time of the year the roads were so bad that the journey would probably have
occupied ten or twelve hours. Fortunately, however, the winter having been
unusually mild, the Connecticut River was "open," or, in other words,
not frozen. The captain of a small steamboat was going to make his first trip
for the season that day (the second February trip, I believe, within the memory
of man), and only waited for us to go on board. Accordingly, we went on board
with as little delay as might be. He was as good as his word, and started
directly.
It certainly was not
called a small steamboat without reason. I omitted to ask the question, but I
should think it must have been of about half a pony power. Mr. Paap, the
celebrated Dwarf, might have lived and died happily in the cabin, which was
fitted with common sash-windows like an ordinary dwelling-house. These windows
had bright red curtains, too, hung on slack strings across the lower panes; so
that it looked like the parlour of a Lilliputian public-house, which had got
afloat in a flood or some other water accident, and was drifting nobody knew
where. But even in this chamber there was a rocking-chair. It would be
impossible to get on anywhere, in America, without a rocking-chair.
I am afraid to tell how
many feet short this vessel was, or how many feet narrow; to apply the words
length and width to such measurement would be a contradiction in terms. But I
may state that we all kept the middle of the deck, lest the boat should
unexpectedly tip over; and that the machinery, by some surprising process of
condensation, worked between it and the keel: the whole forming a warm
sandwich, about three feet thick.
It rained all day, as I
once thought it never did rain anywhere but in the Highlands of Scotland. The
river was full of floating blocks of ice, which were constantly crunching and
cracking under us; and the depth of water, in the course we took to avoid the
larger masses, carried down the middle of the river by the current, did not
exceed a few inches. Nevertheless, we moved onward dexterously; and, being well
wrapped up, bade defiance to the weather, and enjoyed the journey. The
Connecticut River is a fine stream; and the banks in summer-time are, I have no
doubt, beautiful: at all events, I was told so by a young lady in the cabin;
and she should be a judge of beauty, if the possession of a quality include the
appreciation of it, for a more beautiful creature I never looked upon.
After two hours and a
half of this odd travelling (including a stoppage at a small town, where we
were saluted by a gun considerably bigger than our own chimney), we reached
Hartford, and straightway repaired to an extremely comfortable hotel: except,
as usual, in the article of bedrooms, which, in almost every place we visited,
were very conducive to early rising.
We tarried here four
days. The town is beautifully situated in a basin of green hills; the soil is
rich, well wooded, and carefully improved. It is the seat of the local
legislature of Connecticut, which sage body enacted, in bygone times, the
renowned code of "Blue Laws," in virtue whereof, among other
enlightened provisions, any citizen who could be proved to have kissed his wife
on Sunday was punishable, I believe, with the stocks. Too much of the old
Puritan spirit exists in these parts to the present hour; but its influence has
not tended, that I know, to make the people less hard in their bargains, or
more equal in their dealings. As I never heard of its working that effect
anywhere else, I infer that it never will here. Indeed, I am accustomed, with
reference to great professions and severe faces, to judge of the goods of the
other world pretty much as I judge of the goods of this; and whenever I see a
dealer in such commodities with too great a display of them in his window, I
doubt the quality of the article within.
In Hartford stands the
famous oak in which the charter of King Charles was hidden. It is now enclosed
in a gentleman's garden. In the State House is the charter itself. I found the
courts of law here just the same as at Boston; the public Institutions almost
as good. The Insane Asylum is admirably conducted, and so is the Institution
for the Deaf and Dumb.
I very much questioned
within myself, as I walked through the Insane Asylum, whether I should have
known the attendants from the patients, but for the few words which passed
between the former and the Doctor, in reference to the persons under their
charge. Of course I limit this remark merely to their looks; for the
conversation of the mad people was mad enough.
There was one little
prim old lady, of very smiling and good-humoured appearance, who came sidling
up to me from the end of a long passage, and, with a curtsy of inexpressible
condescension, propounded this unaccountable inquiry:
"Does Pontefract
still flourish, sir, upon the soil of England?"
"He does,
ma'am," I rejoined.
"When you last saw
him, sir, he was--"
"Well,
ma'am," said I, "extremely well. He begged me to present his
compliments. I never saw him looking better."
At this the old lady
was very much delighted. After glancing at me for a moment, as if to be quite
sure that I was serious in my respectful air, she sidled back some paces;
sidled forward again; made a sudden skip (at which I precipitately retreated a
step or two); and said:
"I am an
antediluvian, sir."
I thought the best
thing to say was, that I had suspected as much from the first. Therefore I said
so.
"It is an
extremely proud and pleasant thing, sir, to be an antediluvian," said the
old lady.
"I should think it
was, ma'am," I rejoined.
The old lady kissed her
hand, gave another skip, smirked, and sidled down the gallery in a most
extraordinary manner, and ambled gracefully into her own bedchamber.
In another part of the
building there was a male patient in bed; very much flushed and heated.
"Well!" said
he, starting up, and pulling off his nightcap: "it's all settled at last.
I have arranged it with Queen Victoria."
"Arranged
what?" asked the Doctor.
"Why, that
business," passing his hand wearily across his forehead, "about the
siege of New York."
"Oh!" said I,
like a man suddenly enlightened. For he looked at me for an answer.
"Yes. Every house
without a signal will be fired upon by the British troops. No harm will be done
to the others. No harm at all. Those that want to be safe must hoist flags.
That's all they'll have to do. They must hoist flags."
Even while he was
speaking he seemed, I thought, to have some faint idea that his talk was
incoherent. Directly he had said these words, he lay down again; gave a kind of
groan; and covered his hot head with the blankets.
There was another: a
young man whose madness was love and music. After playing on the accordion a
march he had composed, he was very anxious that I should walk into his chamber,
which I immediately did.
By way of being very
knowing, and humouring him to the top of his bent, I went to the window, which
commanded a beautiful prospect, and remarked, with an address upon which I
greatly plumed myself:
"What a delicious
country you have about these lodgings of yours!"
"Poh!" said
he, moving his fingers carelessly over the notes of his instrument. "Well
enough for such an Institution as this!"
I don't think I was
ever so taken aback in all my life.
"I come here just
for a whim," he said coolly. "That's all."
"Oh! That's
all!" said I.
"Yes. That's all.
The Doctor's a smart man. He quite enters into it. It's a joke of mine. I like
it for a time. You needn't mention it, but I think I shall go out next
Tuesday!"
I assured him that I
would consider our interview perfectly confidential: and rejoined the Doctor.
As we were passing through a gallery on our way out, a well-dressed lady, of
quiet and composed manners, came up, and proffering a slip of paper and a pen,
begged that I would oblige her with an autograph. I complied, and we parted.
"I think I
remember having had a few interviews like that with ladies out of doors. I hope
she is not mad?"
"Yes."
"On what subject?
Autographs?"
"No. She hears
voices in the air."
"Well!"
thought I, "it would be well if we could shut up a few false prophets of
these later times, who have professed to do the same; and I should like to try
the experiment on a Mormonist or two to begin with."
In this place there is
the best Gaol for untried offenders in the world. There is also a very
well-ordered State prison, arranged upon the same plan as that at Boston,
except that here there is always a sentry on the wall with a loaded gun. It
contained at that time about two hundred prisoners. A spot was shown me in the
sleeping ward, where a watchman was murdered some years since in the dead of
night, in a desperate attempt to escape made by a prisoner who had broken from
his cell. A woman, too, was pointed out to me, who, for the murder of her
husband, had been a close prisoner for sixteen years.
"Do you
think," I asked of my conductor, "that after so very long an
imprisonment, she has any thought or hope of ever regaining her liberty?"
"Oh dear
yes!" he answered. "To be sure she has."
"She has no chance
of obtaining it, I suppose?"
"Well, I don't
know:" which, by-the-bye, is a national answer. "Her friends mistrust
her."
"What have they to
do with it?" I naturally inquired.
"Well, they won't
petition."
"But if they did,
they couldn't get her out, I suppose?"
"Well, not the
first time, perhaps, nor yet the second, but tiring and wearying for a few
years might do it."
"Does that ever do
it?"
"Why, yes, that'll
do it sometimes. Political friends 'll do it sometimes. It's pretty often done,
one way or another."
I shall always
entertain a very pleasant and grateful recollection of Hartford. It is a lovely
place, and I had many friends there, whom I never can remember with
indifference. We left it with no little regret on the evening of Friday, the
11th, and travelled that night by railroad to New Haven. Upon the way, the
guard and I were formally introduced to each other (as we usually were on such
occasions), and exchanged a variety of small-talk. We reached New Haven at
about eight o'clock, after a journey of three hours, and put up for the night
at the best inn.
New Haven, known also
as the City of Elms, is a fine town. Many of its streets (as its alias
sufficiently imports) are planted with rows of grand old elm-trees; and the
same natural ornaments surround Yale College, an establishment of considerable
eminence and reputation. The various departments of this Institution are
erected in a kind of park or common in the middle of the town, where they are
dimly visible among the shadowing trees. The effect is very like that of an old
cathedral yard in England; and, when their branches are in full leaf, must be
extremely picturesque. Even in the winter-time, these groups of well-grown
trees, clustering among the busy streets and houses of a thriving city, have a
very quaint appearance: seeming to bring about a kind of compromise between
town and country; as if each had met the other half-way, and shaken hands upon
it; which is at once novel and pleasant.
After a night's rest,
we rose early, and in good time went down to the wharf, and on board the packet
New York for New York. This was the first American steamboat of any size that I
had seen; and certainly, to an English eye, it was infinitely less like a steamboat
than a huge floating bath. I could hardly persuade myself, indeed, but that the
bathing establishment off Westminster Bridge, which I left a baby, had suddenly
grown to an enormous size; run away from home; and set up in foreign parts as a
steamer. Being in America, too, which our vagabonds do so particularly favour,
it seemed the more probable.
The great difference in
appearance between these packets and ours is, that there is so much of them out
of the water: the main-deck being enclosed an all sides, and filled with casks
and goods, like any second or third floor in a stack of warehouses; and the
promenade or hurricane deck being atop of that again. A part of the machinery
is always above this deck; where the connecting-rod, in a strong and lofty
frame, is seen working away like an iron top-sawyer. There is seldom any mast
or tackle: nothing aloft but two tall black chimneys. The man at the helm is
shut up in a little house in the fore part of the boat (the wheel being
connected with the rudder by iron chains, working the whole length of the
deck); and the passengers, unless the weather be very fine indeed, usually
congregate below. Directly you have left the wharf, all the life, and stir, and
bustle of a packet cease. You wonder for a long time how she goes on, for there
seems to be nobody in charge of her; and when another of these dull machines
comes splashing by, you feel quite indignant with it, as a sullen, cumbrous,
ungraceful, unshiplike leviathan: quite forgetting that the vessel you are on
board of is its very counterpart.
There is always a
clerk's office on the lower deck, where you pay your fare; a ladies' cabin;
baggage and stowage rooms; engineer's room; and, in short, a great variety of
perplexities which render the discovery of the gentlemen's cabin a matter of
some difficulty. It often occupies the whole length of the boat (as it did in
this case), and has three or four tiers of berths on each side. When I first
descended into the cabin of the New York, it looked, in my unaccustomed eyes,
about as long as the Burlington Arcade.
The Sound, which has to
be crossed on this passage, is not always a very safe or pleasant navigation,
and has been the scene of some unfortunate accidents. It was a wet morning, and
very misty, and we soon lost sight of land. The day was calm, however, and
brightened towards noon. After exhausting (with good help from a friend) the
larder, and the stock of bottled beer, I lay down to sleep: being very much
tired with the fatigues of yesterday. But I awoke from my nap in time to hurry
up, and see Hell Gate, the Hog's Back, the Frying Pan, and other notorious
localities, attractive to all readers of famous Diedrich Knickerbocker's
History. We were now in a narrow channel, with sloping banks on either side, besprinkled
with pleasant villas, and made refreshing to the sight by turf and trees.
Soon we shot, in quick
succession, past a light house: a madhouse (how the lunatics flung up their
caps and roared in sympathy with the headlong engine and the driving tide!); a
gaol; and other buildings: and so emerged to a noble bay, whose waters sparkled
in the now cloudless sunshine like Nature's eyes turned up to Heaven.
Then there lay
stretched out before us, to the right, confused heaps of buildings, with here
and there a spire or steeple, looking down upon the herd below; and here and
there, again, a cloud of lazy smoke; and in the foreground a forest of ships'
masts, cheery with flapping sails and waving flags. Crossing from among them to
the opposite shore, were steam ferry-boats laden with people, coaches, horses,
waggons, baskets, boxes: crossed and recrossed by other ferry-boats: all
travelling to and fro: and never idle. Stately among these restless Insects
were two or three large ships, moving with slow majestic pace, as creatures of
a prouder kind, disdainful of their puny journeys, and making for the broad
sea. Beyond were shining heights, and islands in the glancing river, and a
distance scarcely less blue and bright than the sky it seemed to meet. The city's
hum and buzz, the clinking of capstans, the ringing of bells, the barking of
dogs, the clattering of wheels, tingled in the listening ear. All of which life
and stir, coming across the stirring water, caught new life and animation from
its free companionship; and, sympathising with its buoyant spirits, glistened
as it seemed in sport upon its surface, and hemmed the vessel round, and
plashed the water high about her sides, and, floating her gallantly into the
dock, flew off again to welcome other comers, and speed before them to the busy
port.
THE beautiful
metropolis of America is by no means so clean a city as Boston, but many of its
streets have the same characteristics; except that the houses are not quite so
fresh-coloured, the sign-boards are not quite so gaudy, the gilded letters not
quite so golden, the bricks not quite so red, the stone not quite so white, the
blinds and area railings not quite so green, the knobs and plates upon the
street-doors not quite so bright and twinkling. There are many by-streets,
almost as neutral in clean colours, and positive in dirty ones, as by-streets
in London; and there is one quarter, commonly called the Five Points, which, in
respect of filth and wretchedness, may be safely backed against Seven Dials, or
any other part of famed St. Giles's.
The great promenade and
thoroughfare, as most people know, is Broadway; a wide and bustling street,
which, from the Battery Gardens to its opposite termination in a country road,
may be four miles long. Shall we sit down in an upper floor of the Carlton
House Hotel (situated in the best part of this main artery of New York), and,
when we are tired of looking down upon the life below, sally forth arm-in-arm,
and mingle with the stream?
Warm weather! The sun
strikes upon our heads, at this open window as though its rays were
concentrated through a burning-glass; but the day is in its zenith, and the
season an unusual one. Was there ever such a sunny street as this Broadway? The
pavement stones are polished with the tread
of feet until they
shine again; the red bricks of the houses might be yet in the dry, hot kilns;
and the roofs of those omnibuses look as though, if water were poured on them,
they would hiss and smoke, and smell like half-quenched fires. No stint of
omnibuses here! Half-a-dozen have gone by within as many minutes. Plenty of
hackney cabs and coaches, too; gigs, phaetons, large-wheeled tilburies, and
private carriages--rather of a clumsy make, and not very different from the
public vehicles, but built for the heavy roads beyond the city pavement. Negro
coachmen and white; in straw hats, black hats, white hats, glazed caps, fur
caps; in coats of drab, black, brown, green, blue, nankeen, striped jean and
linen; and there, in that one instance (look while it passes, or it will be too
late), in suits of livery. Some Southern republican that, who puts his blacks
in uniform, and swells with Sultan pomp and power. Yonder, where that phaeton
with the well-clipped pair of greys has stopped--standing at their heads
now--is a Yorkshire groom, who has not been very long in these parts, and looks
sorrowfully round for a companion pair of top-boots, which he may traverse the
city half a year without meeting. Heaven save the ladies, how they dress! We have
seen more colours in these ten minutes than we should have seen elsewhere in as
many days. What various parasols! what rainbow silks and satins! what pinking
of thin stockings, and pinching of thin shoes, and fluttering of ribbons and
silk tassels, and display of rich cloaks with gaudy hoods and linings! The
young gentlemen are fond, you see, of turning down their shirt collars and
cultivating their whiskers, especially under the chin; but they cannot approach
the ladies in their dress or bearing, being, to say the truth, humanity of
quite another sort. Byrons of the desk and counter, pass on, and let us see
what kind of men those are behind ye: those two labourers in holiday clothes,
of whom one carries in his hand a crumpled scrap of paper from which he tries
to spell out a hard name, while the other looks about for it on all the doors
and windows.
Irishmen both! You
might know them, if they were masked, by their long-tailed blue coats and
bright buttons, and their drab trousers, which they wear like men well used to
working dresses, who are easy in no others. It would be hard to keep your model
republics going without the countrymen and countrywomen of those two labourers.
For who else would dig, and delve, and drudge, and do domestic work, and make canals
and roads, and execute great lines of Internal Improvement? Irishmen both, and
sorely puzzled, too, to find out what they seek. Let us go down, and help them,
for the love of home, and that spirit of liberty which admits of honest service
to honest men, and honest work for honest bread, no matter what it be.
That's well! We have
got at the right address at last, though it is written in strange characters
truly, and might have been scrawled with the blunt handle of the spade the
writer better knows the use of than a pen. Their way lies yonder, but what
business takes them there? They carry savings: to hoard up? No. They are
brothers, those men. One crossed the sea alone, and working very hard for one
half-year, and living harder, saved funds enough to bring the other out. That
done, they worked together side by side, contentedly sharing hard labour and
hard living for another term, and then their sisters came, and then another
brother, and lastly, their old mother. And what now? Why, the poor old crone is
restless in a strange land, and yearns to lay her bones, she says, among her
people in the old graveyard at home: and so they go to pay her passage back:
and God help her and them, and every simple heart, and all who turn to the
Jerusalem of their younger days, and have an altar-fire upon the cold hearth of
their fathers!
This narrow
thoroughfare, baking and blistering in the sun, is Wall Street: the Stock
Exchange and Lombard Street of New York. Many a rapid fortune has been made in
this street, and many a no less rapid ruin. Some of these very merchants whom
you see hanging about here now, have locked up money in their strong-boxes,
like the man in the Arabian Nights, and opening them again, have found but
withered leaves. Below, here by the water-side, where the bowsprits of ships
stretch across the footway, and almost thrust themselves into the windows, lie
the noble American vessels which have made their Packet Service the finest in
the world. They have brought hither the foreigners who abound in all the
streets: not, perhaps, that there are more here than in other commercial
cities; but elsewhere they have particular haunts, and you must find them out;
here they pervade the town.
We must cross Broadway
again; gaining some refreshment from the heat in the sight of the great blocks
of clean ice which are being carried into shops and bar-rooms; and the
pine-apples and water-melons profusely displayed for sale. Fine streets of
spacious houses here, you!--Wall Street has furnished and dismantled many of
them very often--and here a deep green leafy square. Be sure that is a
hospitable house, with inmates to be affectionately remembered always, where
they have the open door and pretty show of plants within, and where the child
with laughing eyes is peeping out of window at the little dog below. You wonder
what may be the use of this tall flagstaff in the by-street, with something
like Liberty's head-dress on its top: so do I. But there is a passion for tall
flagstaffs hereabout, and you may see its twin brother in five minutes, if you
have a mind.
Again across Broadway,
and so--passing from the many-coloured crowd and glittering shops--into another
long main street, the Bowery. A rail-road yonder, see, where two stout horses
trot along, drawing a score or two of people and a great wooden ark with ease.
The stores are poorer here, the passengers less gay. Clothes ready made, and
meat ready cooked, are to be bought in these parts; and the lively whirl of
carriages is exchanged for the deep rumble of carts and waggons. These signs
which are so plentiful, in shape like river buoys, or small balloons, hoisted
by cords to poles, and dangling there, announce, as you may see by looking up,
"OYSTERS IN EVERY STYLE." They tempt the hungry most at night, for
then dull candles, glimmering inside, illuminate these dainty words, and make
the mouths of idlers water as they read and linger.
What is this
dismal-fronted pile of bastard Egyptian, like an enchanter's palace in a
melodrama?--A famous prison, called The Tombs. Shall we go in?
So. A long, narrow,
lofty building, stove-heated as usual, with four galleries, one above the
other, going round it, and communicating by stairs. Between the two sides of
each gallery, and in its centre, a bridge, for the greater convenience of
crossing. On each of these bridges sits a man: dozing or reading, or talking to
an idle companion. On each tier are two opposite rows of small iron doors. They
look like furnace doors, but are cold and black, as though the fires within had
all gone out. Some two or three are open, and women, with drooping heads bent
down, are talking to the inmates. The whole is lighted by a sky-light, but it
is fast closed; and from the roof there dangle, limp and drooping, two useless
wind-sails.
A man with keys
appears, to show us round. A good-looking fellow, and, in his way, civil and
obliging.
"Are those black
doors the cells?"
"Yes."
"Are they all
full?"
"Well, they're
pretty nigh full, and that's a fact, and no two ways about it."
"Those at the bottom
are unwholesome, surely?"
"Why, we do only
put coloured people in 'em. That's the truth."
"When do the
prisoners take exercise?"
"Well, they do
without it pretty much."
"Do they never
walk in the yard?"
"Considerable
seldom."
"Sometimes, I
suppose?"
"Well, it's rare
they do. They keep pretty bright without it."
"But suppose a man
were here for a twelvemonth. I know this is only a prison for criminals who are
charged with grave offences, while they are awaiting their trial, or are under
remand, but the law here affords criminals many means of delay. What with
motions for new trial, and in arrest of judgment, and what not, a prisoner
might be here for twelve months, I take it, might he not?"
"Well, I guess he
might."
"Do you mean to
say that in all that time he would never come out at that little iron door for
exercise?"
"He might walk
some, perhaps--not much."
"Will you open one
of the doors?"
"All, if you
like."
The fastenings jar and
rattle, and one of the doors turns slowly on its hinges. Let us look in. A
small bare cell; into which the light enters through a high chink in the wall.
There is a rude means of washing, a table, and a bedstead. Upon the latter sits
a man of sixty, reading. He looks up for a moment; gives an impatient dogged
shake; and fixes his eyes upon his book again. As we withdraw our heads, the
door closes on him, and is fastened as before. This man has murdered his wife,
and will probably be hanged.
"How long has he
been here?"
"A month."
"When will he be
tried?"
"Next term."
"When is
that?"
"Next month."
"In England, if a
man be under sentence of death even, he has air and exercise at certain periods
of the day."
"Possible?"
With what stupendous
and untranslatable coolness he says this, and how loungingly he leads on to the
women's side: making, as he goes, a kind of iron castanet of the key and the
stair-rail!
Each cell door on this
side has a square aperture in it. Some of the women peep anxiously through it
at the sound of footsteps; others shrink away in shame.--For what offence can
that lonely child, of ten or twelve years old, be shut up here? Oh! that boy?
He is the son of a prisoner we saw just now; is a witness against his father;
and is detained here for safe keeping until the trial; that's all.
But it is a dreadful
place for the child to pass the long days and nights in. This is rather hard
treatment for a young witness, is it not?--What says our conductor?
"Well, it an't a
very rowdy life, and that's a fact!"
Again he clinks his
metal castanet, and leads us leisurely away. I have a question to ask him as we
go.
"Pray, why do they
call this place The Tombs?"
"Well, it's the
cant name."
"I know it is.
Why?"
"Some suicides
happened here when it was first built. I expect it come about from that."
"I saw, just now,
that that man's clothes were scattered about the floor of his cell. Don't you
oblige the prisoners to be orderly, and put such things away?"
"Where should they
put 'em?"
"Non the ground,
surely. What do you say to hanging them up?"
He stops and looks
round to emphasise his answer:
"Why, I say that's
just it. When they had hooks they would hang themselves, so they're taken out
of every cell, and there's only the marks left where they used to!"
The prison yard, in
which he pauses now, has been the scene of terrible performances. Into this
narrow, grave-like place men are brought out to die. The wretched creature
stands beneath the gibbet on the ground; the rope about his neck; and when the
sign is given, a weight at its other end comes running down, and swings him up
into the air--a corpse.
The law requires that
there be present at this dismal spectacle the judge, the jury, and citizens to
the amount of twenty-five. From the community it is hidden. To the dissolute
and bad, the thing remains a frightful mystery. Between the criminal and them,
the prison wall is interposed as a thick gloomy veil. It is the curtain to his
bed of death, his winding-sheet, and grave. From him it shuts out life, and all
the motives to unrepenting hardihood in that last hour, which its mere sight
and presence is often all-sufficient to sustain. There are no bold eyes to make
him bold; no ruffians to uphold a ruffian's name before. All beyond the
pitiless stone wall is unknown space.
Let us go forth again
into the cheerful streets.
Once more in Broadway!
Here are the same ladies in bright colours, walking to and fro, in pairs and
singly; yonder the very same light blue parasol which passed and repassed the
hotel window twenty times while we were sitting there. We are going to cross
here. Take care of the pigs. Two portly sows are trotting up behind this
carriage, and a select party of half-a-dozen gentlemen hogs have just now
turned the corner.
Here is a solitary
swine lounging homeward by himself. He has only one ear; having parted with the
other to vagrant dogs in the course of his city rambles. But he gets on very
well without it; and leads a roving, gentlemanly, vagabond kind of life, somewhat
answering to that of our club men at home. He leaves his lodgings every morning
at a certain hour, throws himself upon the town, gets through his day in some
manner quite satisfactory to himself, and regularly appears at the door of his
own house again at night, like the mysterious master of Gil Blas. He is a
free-and-easy, careless, indifferent kind of pig, having a very large
acquaintance among other pigs of the same character, whom he rather knows by
sight than conversation, as he seldom troubles himself to stop and exchange
civilities, but goes grunting down the kennel, turning up the news and
small-talk of the city in the shape of cabbage-stalks and offal, and bearing no
tails but his own: which is a very short one, for his old enemies, the dogs,
have been at that too, and have left him hardly enough to swear by. He is in
every respect a republican pig, going wherever he pleases, and mingling with
the best society, on an equal, if not superior footing, for every one makes way
when he appears, and the haughtiest give him the wall, if he prefer it. He is a
great philosopher, and seldom moved, unless by the dogs before mentioned.
Sometimes, indeed, you may see his small eye twinkling on a slaughtered friend,
whose carcase garnishes a butcher's door-post, but he grunts out, "Such is
life: all flesh is pork!" buries his nose in the mire again, and waddles
down the gutter: comforting himself with the reflection that there is one snout
the less to anticipate stray cabbage-stalks, at any rate.
They are the city
scavengers, these pigs. Ugly brutes they are; having, for the most part,
scanty, brown backs, like the lids of old horsehair trunks: spotted with
unwholesome black blotches. They have long, gaunt legs, too, and such peaked
snouts, that if one of them could be persuaded to sit for his profile, nobody
would recognise it for a pig's likeness. They are never attended upon, or fed,
or driven, or caught, but are thrown upon their own resources in early life,
and become preternaturally knowing in consequence. Every pig knows where he
lives, much better than anybody could tell him. At this hour, just as evening
is closing in, you will see them roaming towards bed by scores, eating their
way to the last. Occasionally, some youth among them who has over-eaten himself,
or has been much worried by dogs, trots shrinkingly homeward, like a prodigal
son; but this is a rare case: perfect self-possession and self-reliance, and
immovable composure, being their foremost attributes.
The streets and shops
are lighted now; and as the eye travels down the long thoroughfare, dotted with
bright jets of gas, it is reminded of Oxford Street or Piccadilly. Here and
there a flight of broad stone cellar steps appears, and a painted lamp directs
you to the Bowling Saloon, or Ten-Pin alley: Ten-pins being a game of mingled
chance and skill, invented when the legislature passed an act forbidding
Nine-Pins. At other downward flights of steps are other lamps, marking the
whereabouts of oyster cellars--pleasant retreats, say I: not only by reason of
their wonderful cookery of oysters, pretty nigh as large as cheese-plates, (or
for thy dear sake, heartiest of Greek Professors!) but because, of all kinds of
eaters of fish, or flesh, or fowl, in these latitudes, the swallowers of
oysters alone are not gregarious; but subduing themselves, as it were, to the
nature of what they work in, and copying the coyness of the thing they eat, do
sit apart in curtained boxes, and consort by twos, not by two hundreds.
But how quiet the
streets are! Are there no itinerant bands; no wind or stringed instruments? No,
not one. By day, are there no Punches, Fantoccini, Dancing Dogs, Jugglers,
Conjurers, Orchestrinas, or even Barrel-organs? No, not one. Yes, I remember
one. One barrel-organ and a dancing monkey--sportive by nature, but fast fading
into a dull, lumpish monkey, of the Utilitarian school. Beyond that, nothing
lively; no, not so much as a white mouse in a twirling cage.
Are there no
amusements? Yes, there is a lecture-room across the way, from which that glare
of light proceeds, and there may be evening service for the ladies thrice a
week, or oftener. For the young gentlemen there is the counting-house, the
store, the bar-room; the latter, as you may see through these windows, pretty
full. Hark! to the clinking sound of hammers breaking lumps of ice, and to the
cool gurgling of the pounded bits, as, in the process of mixing, they are
poured from glass to glass! No amusements? What are these suckers of cigars and
swallowers of strong drinks, whose hats and legs we see in every possible
variety of twist, doing, but amusing them- selves? What are the fifty
newspapers, which those precocious urchins are bawling down the street, and
which are kept filed within, what are they but amusements? Not vapid, waterish
amusements, but good strong stuff; dealing in round abuse and blackguard names;
pulling off the roofs of private houses, as the Halting Devil did in Spain;
pimping and pandering for all degrees of vicious taste, and gorging with coined
lies the most voracious maw; imputing to every man in public life the coarsest
and the vilest motives; scaring away from the stabbed and prostrate body
politic every Samaritan of clear conscience and good deeds; and setting on,
with yell and whistle, and the clapping of foul hands, the vilest vermin and
worst birds of prey.--No amusements!
Let us go on again; and
passing this wilderness of an hotel with stores about its base, like some
continental theatre, or the London Opera House shorn of its colonnade, plunge
into the Five Points. But it is needful, first, that we take as our escort
these two heads of the police, whom you would know for sharp and well-trained
officers if you met them in the Great Desert. So true it is that certain
pursuits, wherever carried on, will stamp men with the same character. These
two might have been begotten, born, and bred in Bow Street.
We have seen no beggars
in the streets by night or day; but of other kinds of strollers plenty.
Poverty, wretchedness, and vice are rife enough where we are going now.
This is the place,
these narrow ways, diverging to the right and left, and reeking everywhere with
dirt and filth. Such lives as are led here, bear the same fruits here as
elsewhere. The coarse and bloated faces at the doors have counterparts at home,
and all the wide world over. Debauchery has made the very houses prematurely
old. See how the rotten beams are tumbling down, and how the patched and broken
windows seem to scowl dimly, like eyes that have been hurt in drunken frays.
Many of those pigs live here. Do they ever wonder why their masters walk
upright in lieu of going on all-fours? and why they talk instead of grunting?
So far, nearly every
house is a low tavern; and on the barroom walls are coloured prints of
Washington, and Queen Victoria of England, and the American Eagle. Among the
pigeon-holes that hold the bottles are pieces of plate glass and coloured
paper, for there is, in some sort, a taste for decoration even here. And, as
seamen frequent these haunts, there are maritime pictures by the dozen: of
partings between sailors and their lady loves, portraits of William of the
ballad, and his Black-Eyed Susan; of Will Watch, the Bold Smuggler; of Paul
Jones the Pirate, and the like: on which the painted eyes of Queen Victoria, and
of Washington to boot, rest in as strange companionship as on most of the
scenes that are enacted in their wondering presence.
What place is this, to
which the squalid street conducts us? A kind of square of leprous houses, some
of which are attainable only by crazy wooden stairs without. What lies beyond
this tottering flight of steps, that creak beneath our tread?--A miserable
room, lighted by one dim candle, and destitute of all comfort, save that which
may be hidden in a wretched bed. Beside it sits a man: his elbows on his knees:
his forehead hidden in his hands. "What ails that man?" asks the
foremost officer. "Fever," he sullenly replies, without looking up.
Conceive the fancies of a fevered brain in such a place as this!
Ascend these pitch-dark
stairs, heedful of a false footing on the trembling boards, and grope your way
with me into this wolfish den, where neither ray of light nor breath of air
appears to come. A negro lad, startled from his sleep by the officer's
voice--he knows it well--but comforted by his assurance that he has not come on
business, officiously bestirs himself to light a candle. The match flickers for
a moment, and shows great mounds of dusky rags upon the ground; then dies away
and leaves a denser darkness than before, if there can be degrees in such
extremes. He stumbles down the stairs, and presently comes back, shading a
flaring taper with his hand. Then the mounds of rags are seen to be astir, and
rise slowly up, and the floor is covered with heaps of negro women, waking from
their sleep: their white teeth chattering, and their bright eyes glistening and
winking on all sides with surprise and fear, like the countless repetition of
one astonished African face in some strange mirror.
Mount up these other
stairs with no less caution (there are traps and pitfalls here for those who
are not so well escorted as ourselves) into the housetop; where the bare beams
and rafters meet overhead, and calm night looks down through the crevices in
the roof. Open the door of one of these cramped hutches full of sleeping
negroes. Pah! They have a charcoal fire within; there is a smell of singeing
clothes, or flesh, so close they gather round the brazier; and vapours issue
forth that blind and suffocate. From every corner, as you glance about you in
these dark retreats, some figure crawls half awakened, as if the judgment hour
were near at hand, and every obscene grave were giving up its dead. Where dogs
would howl to lie, women, and men, and boys slink off to sleep, forcing the
dislodged rats to move away in quest of better lodgings.
Here, too, are lanes
and alleys, paved with mud knee deep: underground chambers, where they dance
and game; the walls bedecked with rough designs of ships, and forts, and flags,
and American Eagles out of number: ruined houses, open to the street, whence,
through wide gaps in the walls, other ruins loom upon the eye, as though the
world of vice and misery had nothing else to show: hideous tenements which take
their name from robbery and murder; all that is loathsome, drooping, and
decayed is here.
Our leader has his hand
upon the latch of "Almack's," and calls to us from the bottom of the
steps; for the assembly-room of the Five-Point fashionables is approached by a
descent. Shall we go in? It is but a moment.
Heyday! the landlady of
Almack's thrives! A buxom fat mulatto woman, with sparkling eyes, whose head is
daintily ornamented with a handkerchief of many colours. Nor is the landlord
much behind her in his finery, being attired in a smart blue jacket, like a
ship's steward, with a thick gold ring upon his little finger, and round his
neck a gleaming, golden watch-guard. How glad he is to see us! What will we
please to call for? A dance? It shall be done directly, sir: "a regular
break-down."
The corpulent black
fiddler, and his friend who plays the tambourine, stamp upon the boarding of
the small raised orchestra in which they sit, and play a lively measure. Five
or six couple come upon the floor, marshalled by a lively young negro, who is
the wit of the assembly, and the greatest dancer known. He never leaves off
making queer faces, and is the delight of all the rest, who grin from ear to
ear incessantly. Among the dancers are two young mulatto girls, with large,
black, drooping eyes, and head-gear after the fashion of the hostess, who are
as shy, or feign to be, as though they never danced before, and so look down
before the visitors, that their partners can see nothing but the long fringed
lashes.
But the dance
commences. Every gentleman sets as long as he likes to the opposite lady, and
the opposite lady to him, and all are so long about it that the sport begins to
languish, when suddenly the lively hero dashes in to the rescue. Instantly the
fiddler grins, and goes at it tooth and nail; there is new energy in the
tambourine; new laughter in the dancers; new smiles in the landlady; new
confidence in the landlord; new brightness in the very candles. Single shuffle,
double shuffle, cut and cross-cut: snapping his fingers, rolling his eyes,
turning in his knees, presenting the backs of his legs in front, spinning about
on his toes and heels like nothing but the man's fingers on the tambourine;
dancing with two left legs, two right legs, two wooden legs, two wire legs, two
spring legs--all sorts of legs and no legs--what is this to him? And in what
walk of life, or dance of life, does man ever get such stimulating applause as
thunders about him, when, having danced his partner off her feet, and himself
too, he finishes by leaping gloriously on the bar-counter, and calling for
something to drink, with the chuckle of a million of counterfeit Jim Crows, in
one inimitable sound?
The air, even in these
distempered parts, is fresh after the stifling atmosphere of the houses; and
now, as we emerge into a broader street, it blows upon us with a purer breath,
and the stars look bright again. Here are The Tombs once more. The city
watch-house is a part of the building. It follows naturally on the sights we
have just left. Let us see that, and then to bed.
What! do you thrust
your common offenders against the police discipline of the town into such holes
as these? Do men and women, against whom no crime is proved, lie here all night
in perfect darkness, surrounded by the noisome vapours which encircle that
flagging lamp you light us with, and breathing this filthy and offensive
stench? Why, such indecent and disgusting dungeons as these cells would bring
disgrace upon the most despotic empire in the world! Look at them, man--you,
who see them every night, and keep the keys. Do you see what they are? Do you
know how drains are made below the streets, and wherein these human sewers
differ, except in being always stagnant?
Well, he don't know. He
has had five-and-twenty young women locked up in this very cell at one time,
and you'd hardly realise what handsome faces there were among 'em.
In God's name! shut the
door upon the wretched creature who is in it now, and put its screen before a
place quite unsurpassed in all the vice, neglect, and devilry of the worst old
town in Europe.
Are people really left
all night, untried, in those black sties?--Every night. The watch is set at
seven in the evening. The magistrate opens his court at five in the morning.
That is the earliest hour at which the first prisoner can be released; and if an
officer appear against him, he is not taken out till nine o'clock or ten.--But
if any one among them die in the interval, as one man did not long ago? Then he
is half eaten by the rats in an hour's time, as that man was; and there an end.
What is this intolerable
tolling of great bells, and crashing of wheels, and shouting in the distance? A
fire. And what that deep red light in the opposite direction? Another fire. And
what these charred and blackened walls we stand before? A dwelling where a fire
has been. It was more than hinted, in an official report, not long ago, that
some of these conflagrations were not wholly accidental, and that speculation
and enterprise found a field of exertion, even in flames: but, be this as it
may, there was a fire last night, there are two to-night, and you may lay an
even wager there will be at least one to-morrow. So, carrying that with us for
our comfort, let us say, Good night, and climb up-stairs to bed.
-------------
One day, during my stay
in New York, I paid a visit to the different public institutions on Long
Island, or Rhode Island: I forget which. One of them is a Lunatic Asylum. The
building is handsome; and is remarkable for a spacious and elegant staircase.
The whole structure is not yet finished, but it is already one of considerable
size and extent, and is capable of accommodating a very large number of
patients.
I cannot say that I
derived much comfort from the inspection of this charity. The different wards
might have been cleaner and better ordered; I saw nothing of that salutary
system which had impressed me so favourably elsewhere; and everything had a
lounging, listless, madhouse air, which was very painful. The moping idiot,
cowering down with long dishevelled hair; the gibbering maniac, with his hideous
laugh and pointed finger; the vacant eye, the fierce wild face, the gloomy
picking of the hands and lips, and munching of the nails: there they were all,
without disguise, in naked ugliness and horror. In the diningroom, a bare,
dull, dreary place, with nothing for the eye to rest on but the empty walls, a
woman was locked up alone. She was bent, they told me, on committing suicide.
If anything could have strengthened her in her resolution, it would certainly
have been the insupportable monotony of such an existence.
The terrible crowd with
which these halls and galleries were filled so shocked me, that I abridged my
stay within the shortest limits, and declined to see that portion of the
building in which the refractory and violent were under closer restraint. I
have no doubt that the gentleman who presided over this establishment at the
time I write of, was competent to manage it, and had done all in his power to
promote its usefulness: but will it be believed that the miserable strife of
Party feeling is carried even into this sad refuge of afflicted and degraded
humanity? Will it be believed that the eyes which are to watch over and control
the wanderings of minds on which the most dreadful visitation to which our
nature is exposed has fallen, must wear the glasses of some wretched side in
Politics? Will it be believed that the governor of such a house as this is
appointed, and deposed, and changed perpetually, as Parties fluctuate and vary,
and as their despicable weather-cocks are blown this way or that? A hundred
times in every week, some new most paltry exhibition of that narrow-minded and
injurious Party Spirit which is the Simoom of America, sickening and blighting
everything of wholesome life within its reach, was forced upon my notice; but I
never turned my back upon it with feelings of such deep disgust and measureless
contempt as when I crossed the threshold of this madhouse.
At a short distance
from this building is another called the Alms House, that is to say, the
workhouse of New York. This is a large institution also: lodging, I believe,
when I was there, nearly a thousand poor. It was badly ventilated, and badly
lighted; was not too clean; and impressed me, on the whole, very uncomfortably.
But it must be remembered that New York, as a great emporium of commerce, and
as a place of general resort, not only from all parts of the States, but from
most parts of the world, has always a large pauper population to provide for;
and labours, therefore, under peculiar difficulties in this respect. Nor must
it be forgotten that New York is a large town, and that in all large towns a
vast amount of good and evil is intermixed and jumbled up together.
In the same
neighbourhood is the Farm, where young orphans are nursed and bred. I did not
see it, but I believe it is well conducted; and I can the more easily credit
it, from knowing how mindful they usually are, in America, of that beautiful
passage in the Litany which remembers all sick persons and young children.
I was taken to these
Institutions by water, in a boat belonging to the Island Gaol, and rowed by a
crew of prisoners, who were dressed in a striped uniform of black and buff, in
which they looked like faded tigers. They took me, by the same conveyance, to
the Gaol itself.
It is an old prison,
and quite a pioneer establishment, on the plan I have already described. I was
glad to hear this, for it is unquestionably a very indifferent one. The most is
made, however, of the means it possesses, and it is as well regulated as such a
place can be.
The women worked in
covered sheds erected for that purpose. If I remember right, there are no shops
for the men; but, be that as it may, the greater part of them labour in certain
stone quarries near at hand. The day being very wet indeed, this labour was
suspended, and the prisoners were in their cells. Imagine these cells, some two
or three hundred in number, and in every one a man locked up; this one at his
door for air, with his hands thrust through the grate; this one in bed (in the
middle of the day, remember); and this one flung down in a heap upon the
ground, with his hands against the bars, like a wild beast. Make the rain pour
down, outside, in torrents. Put the everlasting stove in the midst; hot, and
suffocating, and vaporous as a witch's cauldron. Add a collection of gentle
odours, such as would arise from a thousand mildewed umbrellas, wet through,
and a thousand buck-baskets, full of half-washed linen--and there is the prison
as it was that day.
The prison for the
State at Sing Sing is, on the other hand, a model gaol. That, and Auburn, are,
I believe, the largest and best examples of the silent system.
In another part of the
city is the Refuge for the Destitute: an Institution whose object is to reclaim
youthful offenders, male and female, black and white, without distinction; to
teach them useful trades, apprentice them to respectable masters, and make them
worthy members of society. Its design, it will be seen, is similar to that at
Boston; and it is a no less meritorious and admirable establishment. A
suspicion crossed my mind during my inspection of this noble charity, whether
the superintendent had quite sufficient knowledge of the world and worldly
characters; and whether he did not commit a great mistake in treating some young
girls, who were to all intents and purposes, by their years and their past
lives, women, as though they were little children; which certainly had a
ludicrous effect in my eyes, and, or I am much mistaken, in theirs also. As the
Institution, however, is always under the vigilant examination of a body of
gentlemen of great intelligence and experience, it cannot fail to be well
conducted; and whether I am right or wrong in this slight particular is
unimportant to its deserts and character, which it would be difficult to
estimate too highly.
In addition to these
establishments, there are, in New York, excellent hospitals and schools,
literary institutions and libraries; an admirable fire department (as, indeed,
it should be, having constant practice), and charities of every sort and kind.
In the suburbs there is a spacious cemetery; unfinished yet, but every day
improving. The saddest tomb I saw there was "The Strangers' Grave.
Dedicated to the different hotels in this city."
There are three
principal theatres. Two of them, the Park and the Bowery, are large, elegant,
and handsome buildings, and are, I grieve to write it, generally deserted. The
third, the Olympic, is a tiny show-box for vaudevilles and burlesques. It is
singularly well conducted by Mr. Mitchell, a comic actor of great quiet humour
and originality, who is well remembered and esteemed by London play-goers. I am
happy to report of this deserving gentleman, that his benches are usually well
filled and that his theatre rings with merriment every night. I had almost
forgotten a small summer theatre, called Niblo's, with gardens and open-air
amusements attached; but I believe it is not exempt from the general depression
under which Theatrical Property, or what is humorously called by that name,
unfortunately labours.
The country around New
York is surpassingly and exquisitely picturesque. The climate, as I have
already intimated, is somewhat of the warmest. What it would be without the sea
breezes which come from its beautiful Bay in the evening-time, I will not throw
myself or my readers into a fever by inquiring.
The tone of the best
society in this city is like that of Boston; here and there, it may be, with a
greater infusion of the mercantile spirit, but generally polished and refined,
and always most hospitable. The houses and tables are elegant; the hours later
and more rakish; and there is, perhaps, a greater spirit of contention in
reference to appearances, and the display of wealth and costly living. The
ladies are singularly beautiful.
Before I left New York
I made arrangements for securing a passage home in the George Washington
packet-ship, which was advertised to sail in June; that being the month in
which I had determined, if prevented by no accident in the course of my
ramblings, to leave America.
I never thought that
going back to England, returning to all who are dear to me, and to pursuits
that have insensibly grown to be part of my nature, I could have felt so much
sorrow as I endured when I parted at last, on board this ship, with the friends
who had accompanied me from this city. I never thought the name of any place so
far away, and so lately known, could ever associate itself in my mind with the
crowd of affectionate remembrances that now cluster about it. There are those in
this city who would brighten, to me, the darkest winter day that ever glimmered
and went out in Lapland; and before whose presence even Home grew dim, when
they and I exchanged that painful word which mingles with our every thought and
deed; which haunts our cradle-heads in infancy, and closes up the vista of our
lives in age.
THE journey from New
York to Philadelphia is made by railroad, and two ferries; and usually occupies
between five and six hours. It was a fine evening when we were passengers in
the train: and watching the bright sunset from a little window near the door by
which we sat, my attention was attracted to a remarkable appearance issuing
from the windows of the gentlemen's car immediately in front of us, which I
supposed for some time was occasioned by a number of industrious persons inside
ripping open feather beds, and giving the feathers to the wind. At length it
occurred to me that they were only spitting, which was indeed the case; though
how any number of passengers which it was possible for that car to contain
could have maintained such a playful and incessant shower of expectoration, I
am still at a loss to understand: notwithstanding the experience in all
salivatory phenomena which I afterwards acquired.
I made acquaintance, on
this journey, with a mild and modest young Quaker, who opened the discourse by
informing me, in a grave whisper, that his grandfather was the inventor of
cold-drawn castor oil. I mention the circumstance here, thinking it probable
that this is the first occasion on which the valuable medicine in question was
ever used as a conversational aperient.
We reached the city
late that night. Looking out of my chamber window before going to bed, I saw,
on the opposite side of the way, a handsome building of white marble, which had
a mournful, ghost-like aspect, dreary to behold. I attributed this to this
sombre influence of the night, and, on rising in the morning, looked out again,
expecting to see its steps and portico thronged with groups of people passing
in and out. The door was still tight shut, however; the same cold, cheerless
air prevailed; and the building looked as if the marble statue of Don Guzman
could alone have any business to transact within its gloomy walls. I hastened
to inquire its name and purpose, and then my surprise vanished. It was the Tomb
of many fortunes; the Great Catacomb of investment; the memorable United States
Bank.
The stoppage of this
bank, with all its ruinous consequences, had cast (as I was told on every side)
a gloom on Philadelphia, under the depressing effect of which it yet laboured.
It certainly did seem rather dull and out of spirits.
It is a handsome city,
but distractingly regular. After walking about it for an hour or two, I felt
that I would have given the world for a crooked street. The collar of my coat
appeared to stiffen, and the brim of my hat to expand, beneath its Quakerly
influence. My hair shrunk into a sleek short crop, my hands folded themselves
upon my breast of their own calm accord, and thoughts of taking lodgings in
Mark Lane over against the Market-place, and of making a large fortune by
speculations in corn, came over me involuntarily.
Philadelphia is most
bountifully provided with fresh water, which is showered and jerked about, and
turned on, and poured off everywhere The Water-works, which are on a height
near the city, are no less ornamental than useful, being tastefully laid out as
a public garden, and kept in the best and neatest order. The river is dammed at
this point, and forced by its own power into certain high tanks or reservoirs,
whence the whole city, to the top stories of the houses, is supplied at a very
trifling expense.
There are various
public institutions. Among them a most excellent Hospital--a Quaker
establishment, but not sectarian in the great benefits it confers; a quiet,
quaint old Library, named after Franklin; a handsome Exchange and Post Office;
and so forth. In connection with the Quaker Hospital there is a picture by West,
which is exhibited for the benefit of the funds of the Institution. The subject
is our Saviour healing the sick, and it is, perhaps, as favourable a specimen
of the master as can be seen anywhere. Whether this be high or low praise,
depends upon the reader's taste.
In the same room there
is a very characteristic and lifelike portrait by Mr. Sully, a distinguished
American artist.
My stay in Philadelphia
was very short, but what I saw of its society I greatly liked. Treating of its
general characteristics, I should be disposed to say that it is more provincial
than Boston or New York, and that there is afloat in the fair city an assumption
of taste and criticism, savouring rather of those genteel discussions upon the
same themes, in connection with Shakspeare and the Musical Glasses, of which we
read in the Vicar of Wakefield. Near the city is a most splendid unfinished
marble structure for the Girard College, founded by a deceased gentleman of
that name, and of enormous wealth, which, if completed according to the
original design, will be perhaps the richest edifice of modern times. But the
bequest is involved in legal disputes, and pending them the work has stopped;
so that, like many other great undertakings in America, even this is rather
going to be done one of these days than doing now.
In the outskirts stands
a great prison, called the Eastern Penitentiary: conducted on a plan peculiar
to the State of Pennsylvania. The system here is rigid, strict, and hopeless
solitary confinement. I believe it, in its effects, to be cruel and wrong.
In its intention I am
well convinced that it is kind, humane, and meant for reformation; but I am
persuaded that those who devised this system of Prison Discipline, and those
benevolent gentlemen who carry it into execution, do not know what it is that
they are doing. I believe that very few men are capable of estimating the
immense amount of torture and agony which this dreadful punishment, prolonged
for years, inflicts upon the sufferers; and in guessing at it myself, and in
reasoning from what I have seen written upon their faces, and what to my
certain knowledge they feel within, I am only the more convinced that there is
a depth of terrible endurance in it which none but the sufferers themselves can
fathom, and which no man has a right to inflict upon his fellow-creature. I
hold this slow and daily tampering with the mysteries of the brain to be
immeasurably worse than any torture of the body: and because its ghastly signs
and tokens are not so palpable to the eye and sense of touch as scars upon the
flesh; because its wounds are not upon the surface, and it extorts few cries
that human ears can hear; therefore I the more denounce it, as a secret
punishment which slumbering humanity is not roused up to stay. I hesitated
once, debating with myself whether, if I had the power of saying
"Yes" or "No," I would allow it to be tried in certain
cases, where the terms of imprisonment were short; but now I solemnly declare,
that with no rewards or honours could I walk a happy man beneath the open sky
by day, or lay me down upon my bed at night, with the consciousness that one
human creature, for any length of time, no matter what, lay suffering this
unknown punishment in his silent cell, and I the cause, or I consenting to it
in the least degree.
I was accompanied to
this prison by two gentlemen officially connected with its management, and
passed the day in going from cell to cell, and talking with the inmates. Every
facility was afforded me that the utmost courtesy could suggest. Nothing was
concealed or hidden from my view, and every piece of information that I sought
was openly and frankly given. The perfect order of the building cannot be
praised too highly, and of the excellent motives of all who are immediately
concerned in the administration of the system there can be no kind of question.
Between the body of the
prison and the outer wall there is a spacious garden. Entering it by a wicket
in the massive gate, we pursued the path before us to its other termination,
and passed into a large chamber, from which seven long passages radiate. On
either side of each is a long, long row of low cell doors, with a certain
number over every one. Above, a gallery of cells like those below, except that
they have no narrow yard attached (as those in the ground tier have), and are
somewhat smaller. The possession of two of these is supposed to compensate for
the absence of so much air and exercise as can be had in the dull strip
attached to each of the others, in an hour's time every day; and therefore
every prisoner in this upper story has two cells, adjoining, and communicating
with, each other.
Standing at the central
point, and looking down these dreary passages, the dull repose and quiet that
prevails is awful. Occasionally there is a drowsy sound from some lone weaver's
shuttle, or shoemaker's last, but it is stifled by the thick walls and heavy
dungeon door, and only serves to make the general stillness more profound. Over
the head and face of every prisoner who comes into this melancholy house a
black hood is drawn; and in this dark shroud, an emblem of the curtain dropped
between him and the living world, he is led to the cell from which he never
again comes forth until his whole term of imprisonment has expired. He never
hears of wife or children; home or friends; the life or death of any single
creature. He sees the prison officers, but, with that exception, he never looks
upon a human countenance, or hears a human voice. He is a man buried alive; to
be dug out in the slow round of years; and in the meantime dead to everything
but torturing anxieties and horrible despair.
His name, and crime,
and term of suffering are unknown, even to the officer who delivers him his
daily food. There is a number over his cell door, and in a book of which the
governor of the prison has one copy, and the moral instructor another: this is
the index to his history. Beyond these pages the prison has no record of his
existence: and though he live to be in the same cell ten weary years, ho has no
means of knowing, down to the very last hour, in what part of the building it
is situated; what kind of men there are about him; whether in the long winter
nights there are living people near, or he is in some lonely corner of the
great gaol, with walls, and passages, and iron doors between him and the
nearest sharer in its solitary horrors.
Every cell has double
doors: the outer one of sturdy oak, the other of grated iron, wherein there is
a trap through which his food is handed. He has a Bible, and a slate and
pencil, and, under certain restrictions, has sometimes other books, provided
for the purpose, and pen and ink and paper. His razor, plate, and can, and
basin hang upon the wall, or shine upon the little shelf. Fresh water is laid
on in every cell, and he can draw it at his pleasure. During the day, his
bedstead turns up against the wall, and leaves more space for him to work in. His
loom, or bench, or wheel is there; and there he labours, sleeps and wakes, and
counts the seasons as they change, and grows old.
The first man I saw was
seated at his loom, at work. He had been there six years, and was to remain, I
think, three more. He had been convicted as a receiver of stolen goods, but
even after this long imprisonment denied his guilt, and said he had been hardly
dealt by. It was his second offence.
He stopped his work
when we went in, took off his spectacles, and answered freely to everything
that was said to him, but always with a strange kind of pause first, and in a
low, thoughtful voice. He wore a paper hat of his own making, and was pleased
to have it noticed and commended. He had very ingeniously manufactured a sort
of Dutch clock from some disregarded odds and ends; and his vinegar bottle
served for the pendulum. Seeing me interested in this contrivance, he looked up
at it with a great deal of pride, and said that he had been thinking of
improving it, and that he hoped the hammer and a the piece of broken glass
beside it "would play music before long." He had extracted some
colours from the yarn with which he worked, and painted in few poor figures on
the wall One, of a female, over the door, he called "The Lady of the Lake."
He smiled as I looked
at these contrivances to while away the time; but, when I looked from them to
him, I saw that his lip trembled, and could have counted the beating of his
heart. I forget how it came about, but some allusion was made to his having a
wife. He shook his head at the word, turned aside, and covered his face with
his hands.
"But you are
resigned now?" said one of the gentlemen after a short pause, during which
he had resumed his former manner. He answered with a sigh that seemed quite
reckless in its hopelessness, "Oh yes, oh yes! I am resigned to it."
"And are a better man, you think?" "Well, I hope so: I'm sure I
hope I may be." "And time goes pretty quickly?" "Time is
very long, gentlemen, within these four walls!"
He gazed about
him--Heaven only knows how wearily!--as he said these words; and, in the act of
doing so, fell into a strange stare as if he had forgotten something. A moment
afterwards he sighed heavily, put on his spectacles, and went about his work
again.
In another cell there
was a German, sentenced to five years' imprisonment for larceny, two of which
had just expired. With colours procured in the same manner, he had painted
every inch of the walls and ceiling quite beautifully. He had laid out the few
feet of ground behind with exquisite neatness, and had made a little bed in the
centre, that looked, by-the-bye, like a grave. The taste and ingenuity he had
displayed in everything were most extraordinary; and yet a more dejected,
heart-broken, wretched creature it would be difficult to imagine. I never saw
such a picture of forlorn affliction and distress of mind. My heart bled for
him; and when the tears ran down his cheeks, and he took one of the visitors
aside, to ask, with his trembling hands nervously clutching at his coat to
detain him, whether there was no hope of his dismal sentence being commuted,
the spectacle was really too painful to witness. I never saw or heard of any
kind of misery that impressed me more than the wretchedness of this man.
In a third cell was a
tall, strong black, a burglar, working at his proper trade of making screws and
the like. His time was nearly out. He was not only a very dexterous thief, but
was notorious for his boldness and hardihood, and for the number of his
previous convictions. He entertained us with a long account of his
achievements, which he narrated with such infinite relish, that he actually
seemed to lick his lips as he told us racy anecdotes of stolen plate, and of
old ladies whom he had watched as they sat at windows in silver spectacles (he
had plainly had an eye to their metal, even from the other side of the street),
and had afterwards robbed. This fellow, upon the slightest encouragement, would
have mingled with his professional recollections the most detestable cant; but
I am very much mistaken if he could have surpassed the unmitigated hypocrisy
with which he declared that he blessed the day on which he came into that
prison, and that he never would commit another robbery as long as he lived.
There was one man who
was allowed, as an indulgence, to keep rabbits. His room having rather a close
smell in consequence, they called to him at the door to come out into the
passage. He complied, of course, and stood shading his haggard face in the
unwonted sun-light of the great window, looking as wan and unearthly as if he
had been summoned from the grave. He had a white rabbit in his breast; and when
the little creature, getting down upon the ground, stole back into the cell,
and he, being dismissed, crept timidly after it, I thought it would have been
very hard to say in what respect the man was the nobler animal of the two.
There was an English
thief, who had been there but a few days out of seven years: a villainous,
low-browed, thin-lipped fellow, with a white face; who had as yet no relish for
visitors, and who, but for the additional penalty, would have gladly stabbed me
with his shoemaker's knife. There was another German who had entered the gaol
but yesterday, and who started from his bed when we looked in, and pleaded, in
his broken English, very hard for work. There was a poet, who, after doing two
days' work in every four-and-twenty hours, one for himself and one for the
prison, wrote verses about ships (he was by trade a mariner), and the
"maddening wine-cup," and his friends at home. There were very many
of them. Some reddened at the sight of visitors, and some turned very pale.
Some two or three had prisoner nurses with them, for they were very sick, and
one, a fat old negro, whose leg had been taken off within the gaol, had for his
attendant a classical scholar and an accomplished surgeon, himself a prisoner
likewise. Sitting upon the stairs, engaged in some slight work, was a pretty
coloured boy. "Is there no refuge for young criminals in Philadelphia, then?"
said I. "Yes, but only for white children." Noble aristocracy in
crime!
There was a sailor who
had been there upwards of eleven years, and who in a few months' time would be
free. Eleven years of solitary confinement!
"I am very glad to
hear your time is nearly out." What does he say? Nothing. Why does he
stare at his hands, and pick the flesh upon his fingers, and raise his eyes for
an instant, every now and then, to those bare walls which have seen his head
turn grey? It is a way he has sometimes.
Does he never look men
in the face, and does he always pluck at those hands of his, as though he were
bent on parting skin and bone? It is his humour: nothing more.
It is his humour, too,
to say that he does not look forward to going out; that he is not glad the time
is drawing near; that he did look forward to it once, but that was very long
ago; that he has lost all care for everything. It is his humour to be a
helpless, crushed, and broken man.
And, Heaven be his
witness that he has his humour thoroughly gratified!
There were three young
women in adjoining cells, all convicted at the same time of a conspiracy to rob
their prosecutor. In the silence and solitude of their lives they had grown to
be quite beautiful. Their looks were very sad, and might have moved the
sternest visitor to tears, but not to that kind of sorrow which the
contemplation of the men awakens. One was a young girl; not twenty, as I
recollect; whose snow-white room was hung with the work of some former
prisoner, and upon whose downcast face the sun in all its splendour shone down
through the high chink in the wall, where one narrow strip of bright blue sky
was visible. She was very penitent and quiet; had come to be resigned, she said
(and I believe her); and had a mind at peace. "In a word, you are happy
here?" said one of my companions. She struggled--she did struggle very
hard--to answer, Yes: but raising her eyes, and meeting that glimpse of freedom
overhead, she burst into tears, and said, "She tried to be; she uttered no
complaint; but it was natural that she should sometimes long to go out of that
one cell: she could not help that," she sobbed, poor thing!
I went from cell to
cell that day; and every face I saw, or word I heard, or incident I noted, is
present to my mind in all its painfulness. But let me pass them by, for one,
more pleasant, glance of a prison on the same plan which I afterwards saw at
Pittsburg.
When I had gone over
that in the same manner, I asked the governor if he had any person in his
charge who was shortly going out. He had one, he said, whose time was up next
day; but he had only been a prisoner two years.
Two years! I looked
back through two years in my own life--out of gaol, prosperous, happy,
surrounded by blessings, comforts, and good fortune--and thought how wide a gap
it was, and how long those two years passed in solitary captivity would have
been. I have the face of this man, who was going to be released next day,
before me now. It is almost more memorable in its happiness than the other faces
in their misery. How easy and how natural it was for him to say that the system
was a good one; and that the time went "pretty quick--considering;"
and that when a man once felt he had offended the law, and must satisfy it,
"he got along somehow;" and so forth!
"What did he call
you back to say to you, in that strange flutter?" I asked of my conductor,
when he had locked the door and joined me in the passage.
"Oh! That he was
afraid the soles of his boots were not fit for walking, as they were a good
deal worn when he came in; and that he would thank me very much to have them
mended ready."
Those boots had been
taken off his feet, and put away with the rest of his clothes, two years
before!
I took that opportunity
of inquiring how they conducted themselves immediately before going out; adding
that I presumed they trembled very much.
"Well, it's not so
much a trembling," was the answer--"though they do quiver--as a
complete derangement of the nervous system. They can't sign their names to the
book; sometimes can't even hold the pen; look about 'em without appearing to
know why, or where they are; and sometimes get up and sit down again twenty
times in a minute. This is when they're in the office, where they are taken
with the hood on as they were brought in. When they get outside the gate, they
stop, and look first one way and then the other: not knowing which to take.
Sometimes they stagger as if they were drunk, and sometimes are forced to lean
against the fence, they're so bad:--but they clear off in course of time."
As I walked among these
solitary cells, and looked at the faces of the men within them, I tried to
picture to myself the thoughts and feelings natural to their condition. I imagined
the hood just taken off; and the scene of their captivity disclosed to them in
all its dismal monotony. At first the man is stunned. His confinement is a
hideous vision; and his old life a reality. He throws himself upon his bed, and
lies there abandoned to despair. By degrees the insupportable solitude and
barrenness of the place rouses him from this stupor, and when the trap in his
grated door is opened, he humbly begs and prays for work. "Give me some
work to do, or I shall go raving mad!"
He has it; and by fits
and starts applies himself to labour; but every now and then there comes upon
him a burning sense of the years that must be wasted in that stone coffin, and
an agony so piercing in the recollection of those who are hidden from his view and
knowledge, that he starts from his seat, and, striding up and down the narrow
room with both hands clasped on his uplifted head, hears spirits tempting him
to beat his brains out on the wall.
Again he falls upon his
bed, and lies there moaning. Suddenly he starts up, wondering whether any other
man is near; whether there is another cell like that on either side of him and
listens keenly.
There is no sound, but
other prisoners may be near for all that. He remembers to have heard once, when
he little thought of coming here himself, that the cells were so constructed
that the prisoners could not hear each other, though the officers could hear
them. Where is the nearest man--upon the right, or on the left? or is there one
in both directions? Where is he sitting now--with his face to the light? or is
he walking to and fro? How is he dressed? Has he been here long? Is he much
worn away? Is he very white and spectre-like? Does he think of his neighbour
too?
Scarcely venturing to
breathe, and listening while he thinks, he conjures up a figure with his back
towards him, and imagines it moving about in this next cell. He has no idea of
the face, but he is certain of the dark form of a stooping man. In the cell
upon the other side he puts another figure, whose face is hidden from him also.
Day after day, and often when he wakes up in the middle of the night, he thinks
of these two men until he is almost distracted. He never changes them. There
they are always as he first imagined them--an old man on the right; a younger
man upon the left--whose hidden features torture him to death, and have a
mystery that makes him tremble.
The weary days pass on
with solemn pace, like mourners at a funeral; and slowly he begins to feel that
the white walls of the cell have something dreadful in them: that their colour
is horrible: that their smooth surface chills his blood: that there is one
hateful corner which torments him. Every morning, when he wakes, he hides his
head beneath the coverlet, and shudders to see the ghastly ceiling looking down
upon him. The blessed light of day itself peeps in, an ugly phantom face,
through the unchangeable crevice which is his prison window.
By slow but sure
degrees, the terrors of that hateful corner swell until they beset him at all
times; invade his rest, make his dreams hideous, and his nights dreadful. At
first he took a strange dislike to it: feeling as though it gave birth in his
brain to something of corresponding shape, which ought not to be there, and
racked his head with pains. Then he began to fear it, then to dream of it, and
of men whispering its name and pointing to it. Then he could not bear to look
at it, nor yet to turn his back upon it. Now, it is every night the
lurking-place of a ghost: a shadow:--a silent something, horrible to see, but
whether bird, or beast, or muffled human shape, he cannot tell.
When he is in his cell
by day, he fears the little yard without. When he is in the yard, he dreads to
re-enter the cell. When night comes, there stands the phantom in the corner. If
he have the courage to stand in its place, and drive it out (he had once: being
desperate), it broods upon his bed. In the twilight, and always at the same
hour, a voice calls to him by name; as the darkness thickens, his Loom begins
to live; and even that, his comfort, is a hideous figure, watching him till
daybreak.
Again, by slow degrees,
these horrible fancies depart from him one by one; returning sometimes
unexpectedly, but at longer intervals, and in less alarming shapes. He has
talked upon religious matters with the gentleman who visits him, and has read
his Bible, and has written a prayer upon his slate, and hung it up as a kind of
protection, and an assurance of Heavenly companionship. He dreams now,
sometimes, of his children or his wife, but is sure that they are dead, or have
deserted him. He is easily moved to tears; is gentle, submissive, and
broken-spirited. Occasionally the old agony comes back: a very little thing
will revive it: even a familiar sound, or the scent of summer flowers in the
air; but it does not last long now: for the world without has come to be the
vision, and this solitary life the sad reality.
If his term of
imprisonment be short--I mean comparatively, for short it cannot be--the last
half-year is almost worse than all; for then he thinks the prison will take
fire, and he be burnt in the ruins, or that he is doomed to die within the
walls, or that he will be detained on some false charge, and sentenced for
another term: or that something, no matter what, must happen to prevent his
going at large. And this is natural, and impossible to be reasoned against,
because, after his long separation from human life, and his great suffering,
any event will appear to him more probable in the contemplation than the being
restored to liberty and his fellow-creatures.
If his period of
confinement have been very long, the prospect of release bewilders and confuses
him. His broken heart may flutter for a moment, when he thinks of the world
outside, and what it might have been to him in all those lonely years, but that
is all. The cell door has been closed too long on all its hopes and cares.
Better to have hanged him in the beginning than bring him to this pass, and
send him forth to mingle with his kind, who are his kind no more.
On the haggard face of
every man among these prisoners the same expression sat. I know not what to
liken it to. It had something of that strained attention which we see upon the
faces of the blind and deaf, mingled with a kind of horror, as though they had
all been secretly terrified. In every little chamber that I entered, and at
every grate through which I looked, I seemed to see the same appalling
countenance. It lives in my memory, with the fascination of a remarkable
picture. Parade before my eyes a hundred men, with one among them newly
released from this solitary suffering, and I would point him out.
The faces of the women,
as I have said, it humanises and refines. Whether this be because of their
better nature, which is elicited in solitude, or because of their being gentler
creatures of greater patience and longer suffering, I do not know; but so it
is. That the punishment is nevertheless, to my thinking, fully as cruel and as
wrong in their case as in that of the men, I need scarcely add.
My firm conviction is
that, independent of the mental anguish it occasions--an anguish so acute and
so tremendous, that all imagination of it must fall far short, of the
reality--it wears the mind into a morbid state, which renders it unfit for the
rough contact and busy action of the world. It is my fixed opinion that those
who have undergone this punishment MUST pass into society again morally
unhealthy and diseased. There are many instances on record of men who have
chosen, or have been condemned, to lives of perfect solitude, but I scarcely
remember one, even among sages of strong and vigorous intellect, where its
effect has not become apparent, in some disordered train of thought, or some
gloomy hallucination. What monstrous phantoms, bred of despondency and doubt,
and born and reared in solitude, have stalked upon the earth, making creation
ugly, and darkening the face of Heaven!
Suicides are rare among
these prisoners: are almost, indeed, unknown. But no argument in favour of the
system can reasonably be deduced from this circumstance, although it is very
often urged. All men who have made diseases of the mind their study, know
perfectly well that such extreme depression and despair as will change the
whole character, and beat down all its powers of elasticity and
self-resistance, may be at work within a man, and yet stop short of
self-destruction. This is a common case.
That it makes the
senses dull, and by degrees impairs the bodily faculties, I am quite sure. I
remarked to those who were with me in this very establishment at Philadelphia,
that the criminals who had been there long were deaf. They, who were in the
habit of seeing these men constantly, were perfectly amazed at the idea, which
they regarded as groundless and fanciful. And yet the very first prisoner to
whom they appealed--one of their own selection--confirmed my impression (which
was unknown to him) instantly, and said, with a genuine air it was impossible
to doubt, that he couldn't think how it happened, but he was growing very dull
of hearing.
That it is a singularly
unequal punishment, and affects the worst man least, there is no doubt. In its
superior efficiency as a means of reformation, compared with that other code of
regulations which allows the prisoners to work in company without communicating
together, I have not the smallest faith. All the instances of reformation that
were mentioned to me were of a kind that might have been--and I have no doubt
whatever, in my own mind, would have been--equally well brought about by the
Silent System. With regard to such men as the negro burglar and the English
thief, even the most enthusiastic have scarcely any hope of their conversion.
It seems to me that the
objection that nothing wholesome or good has ever had its growth in such
unnatural solitude, and that even a dog, or any of the more intelligent among
beasts, would pine, and mope, and rust away beneath its influence, would be in
itself a sufficient argument against this system. But when we recollect, in
addition, how very cruel and severe it is, and that a solitary life is always
liable to peculiar and distinct objections of a most deplorable nature, which
have arisen here; and call to mind, moreover, that the choice is not between
this system and a bad or ill-considered one, but between it and another which
has worked well, and is, in its whole design and practice, excellent; there is
surely more than sufficient reason for abandoning a mode of punishment attended
by so little hope or promise, and fraught, beyond dispute, with such a host of
evils.
As a relief to its
contemplation, I will close this chapter with a curious story, arising out of
the same theme, which was related to me, on the occasion of this visit, by some
of the gentlemen concerned.
At one of the
periodical meetings of the inspectors of this prison, a working-man of
Philadelphia presented himself before the Board, and earnestly requested to be
placed in solitary confinement. On being asked what motive could possibly
prompt him to make this strange demand, he answered that he had an irresistible
propensity to get drunk; that he was constantly indulging in it, to his great
misery and ruin; that he had no power of resistance; that he wished to be put
beyond the reach of temptation; and that he could think of no better way than
this. It was pointed out to him, in reply, that the prison was for criminals
who had been tried and sentenced by the law, and could not be made available
for any such fanciful purposes; he was exhorted to abstain from intoxicating
drinks, as he surely might if he would; and received other very good advice,
with which he retired, exceedingly dissatisfied with the result of his
application.
He came again, and
again, and again, and was so very earnest and importunate, that at last they
took counsel together, and said, "He will certainly qualify himself for
admission, if we reject him any more. Let us shut him up. He will soon be glad
to go away, and then we shall get rid of him." So they made him sign a
statement which would prevent his ever sustaining an action for false
imprisonment, to the effect that his incarceration was voluntary, and of his
own seeking; they requested him to take notice that the officer in attendance
had orders to release him at any hour of the day or night, when he might knock upon
his door for that purpose; but desired him to understand, that once going out,
he would not be admitted any more. These conditions agreed upon, and he still
remaining in the same mind, he was conducted to the prison, and shut up in one
of the cells.
In this cell, the man
who had not the firmness to leave a glass of liquor standing untasted on a
table before him--in this cell, in solitary confinement, and working every day
at his trade of shoemaking, this man remained nearly two years. His health beginning
to fail at the expiration of that time, the surgeon recommended that he should
work occasionally in the garden; and, as he liked the notion very much, he went
about this new occupation with great cheerfulness.
He was digging here,
one summer day, very industriously, when the wicket in the outer gate chanced
to be left open; showing, beyond, the well-remembered dusty road and sunburnt
fields. The way was as free to him as to any man living, but he no sooner
raised his head and caught sight of it, all shining in the light, than, with
the involuntary instinct of a prisoner, he cast away his spade, scampered off
as fast as his legs would carry him, and never once looked back.
WE left Philadelphia by
steamboat, at six o'clock one very cold morning, and turned our faces towards
Washington.
In the course of this
day's journey, as on subsequent occasions, we encountered some Englishmen
(small farmers, perhaps, or country publicans at home) who were settled in
America, and were travelling on their own affairs. Of all grades and kinds of
men that jostle one in the public conveyances of the States, these are often
the most intolerable and the most insufferable companions. United to every
disagreeable characteristic that the worst kind of American travellers possess,
these countrymen of ours display an amount of insolent conceit and cool
assumption of superiority quite monstrous to behold. In the coarse familiarity
of their approach, and the effrontery of their inquisitiveness (which they are
in great haste to assert, as if they panted to revenge themselves upon the
decent old restraints of home), they surpass any native specimens that came
within my range of observation: and I often grew so patriotic when I saw and
heard them, that I would cheerfully have submitted to a reasonable fine, if I
could have given any other country in the whole world the honour of claiming
them for its children.
As Washington may be
called the head-quarters of tobacco-tinctured saliva, the time is come when I
must confess, without any disguise, that the prevalence of those two odious
practices of chewing and expectorating began about this time to be anything but
agreeable, and soon became most offensive and sickening. In all the public
places of America this filthy custom is recognised. In the courts of law the
judge has his spittoon, the crier his, the witness his, and the prisoner his;
while the jurymen and spectators are provided for, as so many men who in the
course of nature must desire to spit incessantly. In the hospitals the students
of medicine are requested, by notices upon the wall, to eject their tobacco
juice into the boxes provided for that purpose, and not to discolour the
stairs. In public buildings visitors are implored, through the same agency, to
squirt the essence of their quids, or "plugs," as I have heard them
called by gentlemen learned in this kind of sweetmeat, into the national
spittoons, and not about the bases of the marble columns. But in some parts
this custom is inseparably mixed up with every meal and morning call, and with
all the transactions of social life. The stranger, who follows in the track I
took myself, will find it in its full bloom and glory, luxuriant in all its alarming
recklessness, at Washington. And let him not persuade himself (as I once did,
to my shame) that previous tourists have exaggerated its extent. The thing
itself is an exaggeration of nastiness, which cannot be outdone.
On board this steamboat
there were two young gentlemen, with shirt collars reversed as usual, and armed
with very big walking-sticks; who planted two seats in the middle of the deck,
at a distance of some four paces apart; took out their tobacco boxes; and sat
down opposite each other to chew. In less than a quarter of an hour's time,
these hopeful youths had shed about them, on the clean boards, a copious shower
of yellow rain; clearing, by that means, a kind of magic circle, within whose
limits no intruders dared to come, and which they never failed to refresh and
re-refresh before a spot was dry. This being before breakfast, rather disposed
me, I confess, to nausea; but looking attentively at one of the expectorators,
I plainly saw that he was young in chewing, and felt inwardly uneasy himself. A
glow of delight came over me at this discovery; and, as I marked his face turn
paler and paler, and saw the ball of tobacco in his left cheek quiver with his
suppressed agony, while yet he spat, and chewed, and spat again, in emulation
of his older friend, I could have fallen on his neck and implored him to go on
for hours.
We all sat down to a
comfortable breakfast in the cabin below, where there was no more hurry or
confusion than at such a meal in England, and where there was certainly greater
politeness exhibited than at most of our stage-coach banquets. At about nine
o'clock we arrived at the railroad station, and went on by the cars. At noon we
turned out again, to cross a wide river in another steamboat; landed at a
continuation of the railroad on the opposite shore; and went on by other cars;
in which, in the course of the next hour or so, we crossed by wooden bridges,
each a mile in length, two creeks, called respectively Great and Little
Gunpowder. The water in both was blackened with flights of canvas-backed ducks,
which are most delicious eating, and abound hereabouts at that season of the
year.
These bridges are of
wood, have no parapet, and are only just wide enough for the passage of the
trains; which, in the event of the smallest accident, would inevitably be
plunged into the river. They are startling contrivances, and are most agreeable
when passed.
We stopped to dine at
Baltimore, and, being now in Maryland, were waited on, for the first time, by
slaves. The sensation of exacting any service from human creatures who are
bought and sold, and being, for the time, a party as it were to their
condition, is not an enviable one. The institution exists, perhaps, in its
least repulsive and most mitigated form in such a town as this; but it is
slavery; and though I was, with respect to it, an innocent man, its presence
filled me with a sense of shame and self-reproach.
After dinner we went
down to the railroad again, and took our seats in the cars for Washington.
Being rather early, those men and boys who happened to have nothing particular
to do, and were curious in foreigners, came (according to custom) round the
carriage in which I sat; let down all the windows; thrust in their heads and
shoulders; hooked themselves on conveniently by their elbows; and fell to
comparing notes on the subject of my personal appearance, with as much
indifference as if I were a stuffed figure. I never gained so much
uncompromising information with reference to my own nose and eyes, the various
impressions wrought by my mouth and chin on different minds, and how my head
looks when it is viewed from behind, as on these occasions. Some gentlemen were
only satisfied by exercising their sense of touch; and the boys (who are
surprisingly precocious in America) were seldom satisfied even by that, but
would return to the charge over and over again. Many a budding president has
walked into my room with his cap on his head and his hands in his pockets, and
stared at me for two whole hours: occasionally refreshing himself with a tweak
at his nose, or a draught from the water jug; or by walking to the windows, and
inviting other boys in the street below to come up and do likewise: crying,
"Here he is!" "Come on!" "Bring all your brothers!"
with other hospitable entreaties of that nature.
We reached Washington
at about half-past six that evening, and had upon the way a beautiful view of
the Capitol, which is a fine building of the Corinthian order, placed upon a
noble and commanding eminence. Arrived at the hotel, I saw no more of the place
that night; being very tired, and glad to get to bed.
Breakfast over next
morning, I walk about the streets for an hour or two, and, coming home, throw
up the window in the front and back, and look out. Here is Washington, fresh in
my mind and under my eye.
Take the worst parts of
the City Road and Pentonville, or the straggling outskirts of Paris, where the
houses are smallest, preserving all their oddities, but especially the small
shops and dwellings occupied in Pentonville (but not in Washington) by
furniture brokers, keepers of poor eating-houses, and fanciers of birds. Burn
the whole down; build it up again in wood and plaster; widen it a little; throw
in part of St. John's Wood; put green blinds outside all the private houses,
with a red curtain and a white one in every window; plough up all the roads;
plant a great deal of coarse turf in every place where it ought not to be;
erect three handsome buildings in stone and marble anywhere, but the more
entirely out of everybody's way the better; call one the Post Office, one the
Patent Office, and one the Treasury; make it scorching hot in the morning, and
freezing cold in the afternoon, with an occasional tornado of wind and dust;
leave a brick-field, without the bricks, in all central places where a street
may naturally be expected; and that's Washington.
The hotel in which we
live is a long row of small houses fronting on the street, and opening at the
back upon a common yard, in which hangs a great triangle. Whenever a servant is
wanted,.somebody beats on this triangle from one stroke up to seven, according
to the number of the house in which his presence is required; and as all the
servants are always being wanted, and none of them ever come, this enlivening
engine is in full performance the whole day through. Clothes are drying in this
same yard; female slaves, with cotton handkerchiefs twisted round their heads,
are running to and fro on the hotel business; black waiters cross and recross
with dishes in their hands; two great dogs are playing upon a mound of loose
bricks in the centre of the little square; a pig is turning up his stomach to
the sun, and grunting "that's comfortable!" and neither the men, nor
the women, nor the dogs, nor the pig, nor any created creature takes the
smallest notice of the triangle, which is tingling madly all the time.
I walk to the front
window, and look across the road upon a long, straggling row of houses, one
story high, terminating, nearly opposite, but a little to the left, in a
melancholy piece of waste ground with frowzy grass, which looks like a small
piece of country that has taken to drinking, and has quite lost itself.
Standing anyhow and all wrong, upon this open space, like something meteoric
that has fallen down from the moon, is an odd, lop-sided, one-eyed kind of
wooden building, that looks like a church, with a flagstaff as long as itself
sticking out of a steeple something larger than a tea-chest. Under the window
is a small stand of coaches, whose slave drivers are sunning themselves on the
steps of our door, and talking idly together. The three most obtrusive houses
near at hand are the three meanest. On one--a shop, which never has anything in
the window, and never has the door open--is painted in large characters,
"THE CITY LUNCH." At another, which looks like the back-way to
somewhere else, but is an independent building in itself, oysters are
procurable in every style. At the third, which is a very, very little tailor's
shop, pants are fixed to order; or, in other words, pantaloons are made to
measure. And that is our street in Washington.
It is sometimes called
the City of Magnificent Distances, but it might with greater propriety be
termed the City of Magnificent Intentions; for it is only on taking a
bird's-eye view of it from the top of the Capitol that one can at all
comprehend the vast designs of its projector, an aspiring Frenchman. Spacious
avenues that begin in nothing, and lead nowhere; streets, mile long, that only
want houses, roads, and inhabitants; public buildings that need but a public to
be complete; and ornaments of great thoroughfares, which only lack great
thoroughfares to ornament--are its leading features. One might fancy the season
over, and most of the houses gone out of town for ever with their masters. To
the admirers of cities it is a Barmecide Feast; a pleasant field for the
imagination to rove in; a monument raised to a deceased project, with not even
a legible inscription to record its departed greatness.
Such as it is, it is
likely to remain. It was originally chosen for the seat of Government, as a
means of averting the conflicting jealousies and interests of the different
States; and very probably, too, as being remote from mobs: a consideration not
to be slighted, even in America. It has no trade or commerce of its own: having
little or no population beyond the President and his establishment: the members
of the legislature, who reside there during the session; the Government clerks
and officers employed in the various departments; the keepers of the hotels and
boarding-houses; and the tradesmen who supply their tables. It is very
unhealthy. Few people would live in Washington, I take it, who were not obliged
to reside there; and the tides of emigration and speculation, those rapid and
regardless currents, are little likely to flow at any time towards such dull
and sluggish water.
The principal features
of the Capitol are, of course, the two Houses of Assembly. But there is,
besides, in the centre of the building, a fine rotunda, ninety-six feet in
diameter, and ninety-six high, whose circular wall is divided into
compartments, ornamented by historical pictures. Four of these have for their
subjects prominent events in the revolutionary struggle. They were painted by
Colonel Trumbull, himself a member of Washington's staff at the time of their
occurrence; from which circumstance they derive a peculiar interest of their
own. In this same hall Mr. Greenough's large statue of Washington has been
lately placed. It has great merits, of course, but it struck me as being rather
strained and violent for its subject. I could wish, however, to have seen it in
a better light than it can ever be viewed in where it stands.
There is a very
pleasant and commodious library in the Capitol; and from a balcony in front,
the bird's-eye view, of which I have just spoken, may be had, together with a
beautiful prospect of the adjacent country. In one of the ornamented portions
of the building there is a figure of Justice; whereunto, the Guide Book says,
"the artist at first contemplated giving more of nudity, but he was warned
that the public sentiment in this country would not admit of it, and in his
caution he has gone, perhaps, into the opposite extreme." Poor Justice!
she has been made to wear much stranger garments in America than those she
pines in, in the Capitol. Let us hope that she has changed her dressmaker since
they were fashioned, and that the public sentiment of the country did not cut
out the clothes she hides her lovely figure in just now.
The House of
Representatives is a beautiful and spacious hall of semicircular shape,
supported by handsome pillars. One part of the gallery is appropriated to the
ladies, and there they sit in front rows, and come in, and go out, as at a play
or concert. The chair is canopied, and raised considerably above the floor of
the House; and every member has an easy-chair and a writing-desk to himself:
which is denounced by some people out of doors as a most unfortunate and
injudicious arrangement, tending to long sittings and prosaic speeches. It is
an elegant chamber to look at, but a singularly bad one for all purposes of
hearing. The Senate, which is smaller, is free from this objection, and is
exceedingly well adapted to the uses for which it is designed. The sittings, I need
hardly add, take place in the day; and the parliamentary forms are modelled on
those of the old country.
I was sometimes asked,
in my progress through other places, whether I had not been very much impressed
by the heads of the law-makers at Washington; meaning not their chiefs and
leaders, but literally their individual and personal heads, whereon their hair
grew, and whereby the phrenological character of each legislator was expressed;
and I almost as often struck my questioner dumb with indignant consternation by
answering, "No, that I didn't remember being at all overcome." As I
must, at whatever hazard, repeat the avowal here, I will follow it up by
relating my impressions on this subject in as few words as possible.
In the first place--it
may be from some imperfect development of my organ of veneration--I do not
remember having ever fainted away, or having even been moved to tears of joyful
pride, at sight of any legislative body. I have borne the House of Commons like
a man, and have yielded to no weakness, but slumber, in the House of Lords. I
have seen elections for borough and county, and have never been impelled (no
matter which party won) to damage my hat by throwing it up into the air in
triumph, or to crack my voice by shouting forth any reference to our Glorious
Constitution, to the noble purity of our independent voters, or the
unimpeachable integrity of our independent members. Having withstood such
strong attacks upon my fortitude, it is possible that I may be of a cold and
insensible temperament, amounting to iciness, in such matters; and therefore my
impressions of the live pillars of the Capitol at Washington must be received
with such grains of allowance as this free confession may seem to demand.
Did I see in this
public body an assemblage of men, bound together in the sacred names of Liberty
and Freedom, and so asserting the chaste dignity of those twin goddesses, in
all their discussions, as to exalt at once the Eternal Principles to which
their names are given, and their own character, and the character of their
countrymen, in the admiring eyes of the whole world?
It was but a week since
an aged, gray-haired man, a lasting honour to the land that gave him birth, who
has done good service to his country, as his forefathers did, and who will be
remembered scores upon scores of years after the worms bred in its corruption
are but so many grains of dust--it was but a week since this old man had stood
for days upon his trial before this very body, charged with having dared to assert
the infamy of that traffic which has for its accursed merchandise men and
women, and their unborn children. Yes. And publicly exhibited in the same city
all the while; gilded, framed, and glazed; hung up for general admiration;
shown to strangers, not with shame, but pride; its face not turned towards the
wall, itself not taken down and burned; is the Unanimous Declaration of The
Thirteen United States of America, which solemnly declares that All Men are
created Equal; and are endowed by their Creator with the Inalienable Rights of
Life, Liberty, and the Pursuit of Happiness!
It was not a month
since this same body had sat calmly by, and heard a man, one of themselves,
with oaths which beggars in their drink reject, threaten to cut another's
throat from ear to ear. There he sat among them; not crushed by the general
feeling of the assembly, but as good a man as any.
There was but a week to
come, and another of that body, for doing his duty to those who sent him there;
for claiming in a Republic the Liberty and Freedom of expressing their
sentiments, and making known their prayer; would be tried, found guilty, and
have strong censure passed upon him by the rest. His was a grave offence
indeed; for, years before, he had risen up and said, "A gang of male and
female slaves for sale, warranted to breed like cattle, linked to each other by
iron fetters, are passing now along the open street beneath the windows of your
Temple of Equality! Look!" But there are many kinds of hunters engaged in
the Pursuit of Happiness, and they go variously armed. It is the Inalienable
Right of some among them to take the field after their Happiness, equipped with
cat and cart-whip, stocks, and iron collar, and to shout their view halloa!
(always in praise of Liberty) to the music of clanking chains and bloody
stripes.
Where sat the many
legislators of coarse threats; of words and blows such as coalheavers deal upon
each other, when they forget their breeding? On every side. Every session had
its anecdotes of that kind, and the actors were all there.
Did I recognise in this
assembly a body of men who, applying themselves in a new world to correct some
of the falsehoods and vices of the old, purified the avenues to Public Life,
paved the dirty ways to Place and Power, debated and made laws for the Common
Good, and had no party but their Country?
I saw in them the
wheels that move the meanest perversion of virtuous Political Machinery that
the worst tools ever wrought. Despicable trickery at elections; under-handed
tamperings with public officer; cowardly attacks upon opponents, with
scurrilous newspapers for shields, and hired pens for daggers; shameful
trucklings to mercenary knaves, whose claim to be considered is, that every day
and week they sow new crops of ruin with their venal types, which are the
dragon's teeth of yore, in everything but sharpness; aidings and abettings of
every bad inclination in the popular mind, and artful suppressions of all its
good influences: such things as these, and, in a word, Dishonest Faction in its
most depraved and most unblushing form, stared out from every corner of the
crowded hall.
Did I see among them
the intelligence and refinement: the true, honest, patriotic heart of America?
Here and there were drops of its blood and life, but they scarcely coloured the
stream of desperate adventurers which sets that way for profit and for pay. It
is the game of these men, and of their profligate organs, to make the strife of
politics so fierce and brutal, and so destructive all self-respect in worthy
men, that sensitive and delicate-minded persons shall be kept aloof, and they,
and such as they, be left to battle out their selfish views unchecked. And thus
this lowest of all scrambling fights goes on, and they who in other countries
would, from their intelligence and station, most aspire to make laws, do here
recoil the farthest from that degradation.
That there are, among
the representatives of the people in both Houses, and among all parties, some
men of high character and great abilities, I need not say. The foremost among
those politicians who are known in Europe have been already described, and I
see no reason to depart from the rule I have laid down for my guidance, of
abstaining from all mention of individuals. It will be sufficient to add that,
to the most favourable accounts that have been written of them, I more than
fully and most heartily subscribe; and that personal intercourse and free
communication have bred within me, not the result predicted in the very
doubtful proverb, but increased admiration and respect. They are striking men
to look at, hard to deceive, prompt to act, lions in energy, Crichtons in
varied accomplishments, Indians in fire of eye and gesture, Americans in strong
and generous impulse; and they as well represent the honour and wisdom of their
country at home, as the distinguished gentleman who is now its minister at the
British Court sustains its highest character abroad.
I visited both Houses
nearly every day during my stay in Washington. On my initiatory visit to the
House of Representatives, they divided against a decision of the chair; but the
chair won. The second time I went, the member who was speaking, being
interrupted by a laugh, mimicked it, as one child would in quarrelling with
another, and added "that he would make honourable gentlemen opposite sing
out a little more on the other side of their mouths presently." But
interruptions are rare; the speaker being usually heard in silence. There are
more quarrels than with us, and more threatenings than gentlemen are accustomed
to exchange in any civilised society of which we have record: but farmyard
imitations have not as yet been imported from the Parliament of the United
Kingdom. The feature in oratory which appears to be the most practised, and
most relished, is the constant repetition of the same idea, or shadow of an
idea, in fresh words; and the inquiry out of doors is not, "What did he
say?" but, "How long did he speak?" These, however, are but
enlargements of a principle which prevails elsewhere.
The Senate is a
dignified and decorous body, and its proceedings are conducted with much
gravity and order. Both Houses are handsomely carpeted; but the state to which
these carpets are reduced by the universal disregard of the spittoon with which
every honourable member is accommodated, and the extraordinary improvements on
the pattern which are squirted and dabbled upon it in every direction, do not
admit of being described. I will merely observe, that I strongly recommend all
strangers not to look at the floor; and if they happen to drop anything, though
it be their purse, not to pick it up with an ungloved hand on any account.
It is somewhat
remarkable too, at first, to say the least, to see so many honourable members
with swelled faces; and it is scarcely less remarkable to discover that this
appearance is caused by the quantity of tobacco they contrive to stow within
the hollow of the cheek. It is strange enough, too, to see an honourable gentleman
leaning back in his tilted chair, with his legs on the desk before him, shaping
a convenient "plug" with his penknife, and, when it is quite ready
for use, shooting the old one from his mouth as from a pop-gun, and clapping
the new one in its place.
I was surprised to
observe that even steady old chewers of great experience are not always good
marksmen, which has rather inclined me to doubt that general proficiency with
the rifle, of which we have heard so much in England. Several gentlemen called
upon me who, in the course of conversation, frequently missed the spittoon at
five paces; and one (but he was certainly short-sighted) mistook the closed
sash for the open window at three. On another occasion, when I dined out, and
was sitting with two ladies and some gentlemen round a fire before dinner, one
of the company fell short of the fire-place six distinct times. I am disposed
to think, however, that this was occasioned by his not aiming at that object;
as there was a white marble hearth before the fender, which was more
convenient, and may have suited his purpose better.
The Patent Office at
Washington furnishes an extraordinary example of American enterprise and
ingenuity; for the immense number of models it contains are the accumulated
inventions of only five years: the whole of the previous collection having been
destroyed by fire. The elegant structure in which they are arranged is one of
design rather than execution, for there is but one side erected out of four,
though the works are stopped. The Post Office is a very compact and very
beautiful. In one of the departments, among a collection of rare and curious
articles, are deposited the presents which have been made from time to time to
the American ambassadors at foreign courts by the various potentates to whom
they were the accredited agents of the republic: gifts which, by the law, they
are not permitted to retain. I confess that I looked upon this as a very
painful exhibition, and one by no means flattering to the national standard of
honesty and honour. That can scarcely be a high state of moral feeling which
imagines a gentleman of repute and station likely to be corrupted, in the
discharge of his duty, by the present of a snuff-box, or a richly-mounted
sword, or an Eastern shawl; and surely the Nation who reposes confidence in her
appointed servants is likely to be better served than she who makes them the
subject of such very mean and paltry suspicions.
At George Town, in the
suburbs, there is a Jesuit College; delightfully situated, and, so far as I had
an opportunity of seeing, well managed. Many persons who are not members of the
Romish church avail themselves, I believe, of these institutions, and of the
advantageous opportunities they afford for the education of their children. The
heights in this neighbourhood, above the Potomac River, are very picturesque;
and are free, I should conceive, from some of the insalubrities of Washington.
The air, at that elevation, was quite cool and refreshing, when in the city it
was burning hot.
The President's mansion
is more like an English club-house, both within and without, than any other
kind of establishment with which I can compare it. The ornamental ground about
it has been laid out in garden walks; they are pretty, and agreeable to the eye;
though they have that uncomfortable air of having been made yesterday, which is
far from favourable to the display of such beauties.
My first visit to this
house was on the morning after my arrival, when I was carried thither by an
official gentleman, who was so kind as to charge himself with my presentation
to the President.
We entered a large
hall, and, having twice or thrice rung a bell which nobody answered, walked
without further ceremony through the rooms on the ground-floor, as divers other
gentlemen (mostly with their hats on, and their hands in their pockets) were
doing very leisurely. Some of these had ladies with them, to whom they were
showing the premises; others were lounging on the chairs and sofas; others, in
a perfect state of exhaustion from listlessness, were yawning drearily. The
greater portion of this assemblage were rather asserting their supremacy than
doing anything else, as they had no particular business there, that anybody
knew of. A few were closely eyeing the movables, as if to make quite sure that
the President (who was far from popular) had not made away with any of the
furniture, or sold the fixtures for his private benefit.
After glancing at these
loungers; who were scattered over a pretty drawing-room, opening upon a terrace
which commanded a beautiful prospect of the river and the adjacent country; and
who were sauntering, too, about a larger state-room called the Eastern
Drawing-room; we went up-stairs into another chamber, where were certain
visitors waiting for audiences. At sight of my conductor, a black in plain
clothes and yellow slippers who was gliding noiselessly about, and whispering
messages in the ears of the more impatient, made a sign of recognition, and
glided off to announce him.
We had previously looked
into another chamber fitted all round with a great bare wooden desk or counter,
whereon lay files of newspapers, to which sundry gentlemen were referring. But
there were no such means of beguiling the time in this apartment, which was as
unpromising and tiresome as any waiting-room in one of our public
establishments, or any physician's dining-room during his hours of consultation
at home.
There were some fifteen
or twenty persons in the room. One, a tall, wiry, muscular old man, from the
west; sunburnt and swarthy; with a brown-white hat on his knees, and a giant
umbrella resting between his legs; who sat bolt upright in his chair, frowning
steadily at the carpet, and twitching the hard lines about his mouth, as if he
had made up his mind "to fix" the President on what he had to say,
and wouldn't bate him a grain. Another, a Kentucky farmer, six feet six in
height, with his hat on, and his hands under his coat-tails, who leaned against
the wall and kicked the floor with his heel, as though, he had Time's head
under his shoe, and were literally "killing" him. A third, an
oval-faced, bilious-looking man, with sleek black hair cropped close, and
whiskers and beard shaved down to blue dots, who sucked the head of a thick
stick, and from time to time took it out of his mouth to see how it was getting
on. A fourth did nothing but whistle. A fifth did nothing but spit. And,
indeed, all these gentlemen were so very persevering and energetic in this
latter particular, and bestowed their favours so abundantly upon the carpet,
that I take it for granted the Presidential housemaids have high wages, or, to
speak more genteelly, an ample amount of "compensation:" which is the
American word for salary in the case of all public servants.
We had not waited in
this room many minutes before the black messenger returned, and conducted us
into another of smaller dimensions, where, at a business-like table covered
with papers, sat the President himself. He looked somewhat worn and
anxious,--and well he might: being at war with everybody,--but the expression
of his face was mild and pleasant, and his manner was remarkably unaffected,
gentlemanly, and agreeable. I thought that, in his whole carriage and
demeanour, he became his station singularly well.
Being advised that the
sensible etiquette of the republican court admitted of a traveller, like
myself, declining, without any impropriety, an invitation to dinner, which did
not reach me until I had concluded my arrangements for leaving Washington some
days before that to which it referred, I only returned to this house once. It
was on the occasion of one of those general assemblies which are held on
certain nights, between the hours of nine and twelve o'clock, and are called,
rather oddly, Levees.
I went, with my wife,
at about ten. There was a pretty dense crowd of carriages and people in the
courtyard, and, so far as I could make out, there were no very clear
regulations for the taking up or setting down of company. There were certainly
no policemen to soothe startled horses, either by sawing at their bridles or
flourishing truncheons in their eyes; and I am ready to make oath that no
inoffensive persons were knocked violently on the head, or poked acutely in
their backs or stomachs; or brought to a stand-still by any such gentle means,
and then taken into custody for not moving on. But there was no confusion or
disorder. Our carriage reached the porch in its turn, without any blustering,
swearing, shouting, backing, or other disturbance: and we dismounted with as
much ease and comfort as though we had been escorted by the whole Metropolitan
Force, from A to Z inclusive.
The suite of rooms on
the ground-floor were lighted up; and a military band was playing in the hall.
In the smaller drawing-room, the centre of a circle of company, were the
President and his daughter-in-law, who acted as the lady of the mansion: and a
very interesting, graceful, and accomplished lady too. One gentleman who stood
among this group appeared to take upon himself the functions of a master of the
ceremonies. I saw no other officers or attendants, and none were needed.
The great drawing-room
which I have already mentioned, and the other chambers on the ground-floor,
were crowded to excess. The company was not, in our sense of the term, select,
for it comprehended persons of very many grades and classes; nor was there any
great display of costly attire: indeed, some of the costumes may have been, for
aught I know, grotesque enough. But the decorum and propriety of behaviour
which prevailed were unbroken by any rude or disagreeable incident; and every
man, even among the miscellaneous crowd in the hall who were admitted without
any orders or tickets to look on, appeared to feel that he was a part of the
Institution, and was responsible for its preserving a becoming character, and
appearing to the best advantage.
That these visitors,
too, whatever their station, were not without some refinement of taste and
appreciation of intellectual gifts, and gratitude to those men who, by the
peaceful exercise of great abilities, shed new charms and associations upon the
homes of their countrymen, and elevate their character in other lands, was most
earnestly testified by their reception of Washington Irving, my dear friend,
who had recently been appointed Minister at the Court of Spain, and who was
among them that night, in his new character, for the first and last time before
going abroad. I sincerely believe that, in all the madness of American
politics, few public men would have been so earnestly, devotedly, and
affectionately caressed as this most charming writer: and I have seldom
respected a public assembly more than I did this eager throng, when I saw them
turning with one mind from noisy orators and officers of state, and flocking
with a generous and honest impulse round the man of quiet pursuits: proud in
his promotion, as reflecting back upon their country: and grateful to him with
their whole hearts for the store of graceful fancies he had poured out among
them. Long may he dispense such treasures with unsparing hand; and long may
they remember him as worthily!
---------------------------
The term we had
assigned for the duration of our stay in Washington was now at an end, and we
were to begin to travel; for the railroad distances we had traversed yet, in
journeying among these older towns, are on that great continent looked upon as
nothing.
I had at first intended
going South--to Charleston. But when I came to consider the length of time
which this journey would occupy, and the premature heat of the season, which
even at Washington had been often very trying; and weighed, moreover, in my own
mind, the pain of living in the constant contemplation of slavery, against the
more than doubtful chances of my ever seeing it, in the time I had to spare, stripped
of the disguises in which it would certainly be dressed, and so adding any item
to the host of facts already heaped together on the subject; I began to listen
to old whisperings which had often been present to me at home in England, when
I little thought of ever being here; and to dream again of cities growing up,
like palaces in fairy tales, among the wilds and forests of the west.
The advice I received
in most quarters, when I began to yield to my desire of travelling towards that
point of the compass, was, according to custom, sufficiently cheerless: my
companion being threatened with more perils, dangers, and discomforts than I
can remember, or would catalogue if I could; but of which it will be sufficient
to remark that blowings-up in steamboats and breakings-down in coaches were
among the least. But, having a western route sketched out for me by the best
and kindest authority to which I could have resorted, and putting no great
faith in these discouragements, I soon determined on my plan of action.
This was to travel
south only to Richmond in Virginia; and then to turn, and shape our course for
the Far West; whither I beseech the reader's company in a new chapter.
WE were to proceed in
the first instance by steamboat: and as it is usual to sleep on board, in
consequence of the starting hour being four o'clock in the morning, we went
down to where she lay, at that very uncomfortable time for such expeditions
when slippers are most valuable, and a familiar bed, in the perspective of an
hour or two, looks uncommonly pleasant.
It is ten o'clock at
night: say half-past ten: moonlight, warm, and dull enough. The steamer (not
unlike a child's Noah's ark in form, with the machinery on the top of the roof)
is riding lazily up and down, and bumping clumsily against the wooden pier, as
the ripple of the river trifles with its unwieldy carcase. The wharf is some
distance from the city. There is nobody down here; and one or two dull lamps
upon the steamer's decks are the only signs of life remaining, when our coach
has driven away. As soon as our footsteps are heard upon the planks, a fat
negress, particularly favoured by nature in respect of bustle, emerges from
some dark stairs, and marshals my wife towards the ladies' cabin, to which
retreat she goes, followed by a mighty bale of cloaks and great-coats. I
valiantly resolve not to go to bed at all, but to walk up and down the pier
till morning.
I begin my
promenade--thinking of all kinds of distant things and persons, and of nothing
near--and pace up and down for half an hour. Then I go on board again: and,
getting into the light of one of the lamps, look at my watch, and think it must
have stopped; and wonder what has become of the faithful secretary whom I
brought along with me from Boston. He is supping with our late landlord (a Field
Marshal at least, no doubt) in honour of our departure, and may be two hours
longer. I walk again, but it gets duller and duller: the moon goes down: next
June seems farther off in the dark, and the echoes of my footsteps make me
nervous. It has turned cold, too; and walking up and down without any companion
in such lonely circumstances is but poor amusement. So I break my staunch
resolution, and think it may be, perhaps, as well to go to bed.
I go on board again;
open the door of the gentlemen's cabin; and walk in. Somehow or other--from its
being so quiet I suppose--I have taken it into my head that there is nobody
there. To my horror and amazement it is full of sleepers in every stage, shape,
attitude, and variety of slumber: in the berths, on the chairs, on the floors,
on the tables, and particularly round the stove, my detested enemy. I take
another step forward, and slip upon the shining face of a black steward who
lies rolled in a blanket on the floor. He jumps up, grins, half in pain and
half in hospitality; whispers my own name in my ear; and, groping among the
sleepers, leads me to my berth. Standing beside it, I count these slumbering
passengers, and get past forty. There is no use in going further, so I begin to
undress. As the chairs are all occupied, and there is nothing else to put my
clothes on, I deposit them upon the ground: not without soiling my hands, for
it is in the same condition as the carpets in the Capitol, and from the same
cause. Having but partially undressed, I clamber on my shelf, and hold the
curtain open for a few minutes while I look round on all my fellow-travellers
again. That done, I let it fall on them, and on the world: turn round: and go
to sleep.
I wake, of course, when
we get under way, for there is a good deal of noise. The day is then just
breaking. Everybody wakes at the same time. Some are self-possessed directly,
and some are much perplexed to make out where they are until they have rubbed
their eyes, and, leaning on one elbow, looked about them. Some yawn, some
groan, nearly all spit, and a few get up. I am among the risers: for it is easy
to feel, without going into fresh air, that the atmosphere of the cabin is vile
in the least degree. I huddle on my clothes, go down into the fore-cabin, get
shaved by the barber, and wash myself. The washing and dressing apparatus, for
the passengers generally, consists of two jack-towels, three small wooden
basins, a keg of water and a ladle to serve it out with, six square inches of
looking-glass, two ditto ditto of yellow soap, a comb and brush for the head,
nothing for the teeth. Everybody uses the comb and brush, except myself.
Everybody stares to see me using my own; and two or three gentlemen are
strongly disposed to banter me on my prejudices, but don't. When I have made my
toilet, I go upon the hurricane deck, and set in for two hours of hard walking
up and down. The sun is rising brilliantly; we are passing Mount Vernon, where
Washington lies buried; the river is wide and rapid; and its banks are
beautiful. All the glory and splendour of the day are coming on, and growing
brighter every minute.
At eight o'clock we
breakfast in the cabin where I passed the night, but the windows and doors are
all thrown open, and now it is fresh enough. There is no hurry or greediness
apparent in the dispatch of the meal. It is longer than a travelling breakfast
with us; more orderly; and more polite.
Soon after nine o'clock
we come to Potomac Creek, where we are to land; and then comes the oddest part
of the journey. Seven stage-coaches are preparing to carry us on. Some of them
are ready, some of them are not ready. Some of the drivers are blacks, some
whites. There are four horses to each coach, and all the horses, harnessed or
unharnessed, are there. The passengers are getting out of the steamboat, and
into the coaches; the luggage is being transferred in noisy wheelbarrows; the
horses are frightened, and impatient to start; the black drivers are chattering
to them like so many monkeys; and the white ones whooping like so many drovers:
for the main thing to be done, in all kinds of hostlering here, is to make as
much noise as possible. The coaches are something like the French coaches, but
not nearly so good. In lieu of springs, they are hung on bands of the strongest
leather. There is very little choice or difference between them; and they may
be likened to the car portion of the swings at an English fair, roofed, put
upon axle-trees and wheels, and curtained with painted canvas. They are covered
with mud from the roof to the wheel-tire, and have never been cleaned since
they were first built.
The tickets we have
received on board the steamboat are marked No. 1, so we belong to coach No. 1.
I throw my coat on the box, and hoist my wife and her maid into the inside. It
has only one step, and that being about a yard from the ground, is usually
approached by a chair: when there is no chair, ladies trust in Providence. The
coach holds nine inside, having a seat across from door to door, where we in
England put our legs; so that there is only one feat more difficult in the
performance than getting in, and that is getting out again. There is only one
outside passenger, and he sits upon the box. As I am that one, I climb up; and
while they are strapping the luggage on the roof, and heaping it into a kind of
tray behind, have a good opportunity of looking at the driver.
He is a negro--very
black indeed. He is dressed in a coarse pepper-and-salt suit excessively
patched and darned (particularly at the knees), grey stockings, enormous
unblacked high-low shoes, and very short trousers. He has two odd gloves: one
of parti-coloured worsted, and one of leather. He has a very short whip, broken
in the middle, and bandaged up with string. And yet he wears a low-crowned,
broad-brimmed, black hat: faintly shadowing forth a kind of insane imitation of
an English coachman! But somebody in authority cries "Go ahead!" as I
am making these observations. The mail takes the lead in a four-horse waggon,
and all the coaches follow in procession: headed by No. 1.
By the way, whenever an
Englishman would cry "All right!" an American cries "Go
ahead!" which is somewhat expressive of the national character of the two
countries.
The first half-mile of
the road is over bridges made of loose planks laid across two parallel poles,
which tilt up as the wheels roll over them; and IN the river. The river has a
clayey bottom, and is full of holes, so that half a horse is constantly
disappearing unexpectedly, and can't be found again for some time.
But we get past even this,
and come to the road itself, which is a series of alternate swamps and
gravel-pits. A tremendous place is close before us, the black driver rolls his
eyes, screws his mouth up very round, and looks straight between the two
leaders, as if he were saying to himself, "We have done this often before,
but now I think we shall have a crash." He takes a rein in each hand;
jerks and pulls at both; and dances on the splash-board with both feet (keeping
his seat, of course) like the late lamented Ducrow on two of his fiery
coursers. We come to the spot, sink down in the mire nearly to the coach
windows, tilt on one side at an angle of forty-five degrees, and stick there.
The insides scream dismally; the coach stops; the horses flounder; all the
other six coaches stop; and their four-and-twenty horses flounder likewise: but
merely for company, and in sympathy with ours. Then the following circumstances
occur.
BLACK DRIVER (to the
horses). "Hi!"
Nothing happens.
Insides scream again.
BlACK DRIVER (to the
horses). "Ho!"
Horses plunge, and
splash the black driver.
GENTLEMAN INSIDE
(looking out). "Why, what on airth--"
Gentleman receives a
variety of splashes, and draws his head in again, without finishing his
question or waiting for an answer.
BLACK DRIVER (still to
the horses). "Jiddy! Jiddy!"
Horses pull violently,
drag the coach out of the hole, and draw it up a bank; so steep that the black
driver's legs fly up into the air, and he goes back among the luggage on the
roof. But he immediately recovers himself, and cries (still to the horses),
" Pill!"
No effect. On the
contrary, the coach begins to roll back upon No. 2, which rolls back upon No.
3, which rolls back upon No. 4, and so on, until No. 7 is heard to curse and
swear nearly a quarter of a mile behind.
BLACK DRIVER (louder
than before). "Pill!"
Horses make another
struggle to get up the bank, and again the coach rolls backward.
BLACK DRIVER (louder
than before). "Pe-e-e-ill!"
Horses make a desperate
struggle.
BLACK DRIVER (recovering
spirits). "Hi! Jiddy, Jiddy, Pill!"
Horses make another
effort.
BLACK DRIVER (with
great vigour). "Ally Loo! Hi. Jiddy, Jiddy. Pill. Ally Loo!"
Horses almost do it.
BLACK DRIVER (with his
eyes starting out of his head). "Lee, den. Lee, dere. Hi. Jiddy, Jiddy.
Pill. Ally Loo. Lee-e-e-e-e!"
They run up the bank,
and go down again on the other side at a fearful pace. It is impossible to stop
them, and at the bottom there is a deep hollow, full of water. The coach rolls
frightfully. The insides scream. The mud and water fly about us. The black
driver dances like a madman. Suddenly we are all right by some extraordinary
means, and stop to breathe.
A black friend of the black
driver is sitting on a fence. The black driver recognises him by twirling his
head round and round like a harlequin, rolling his eyes, shrugging his
shoulders, and grinning from ear to ear. He stops short, turns to me, and says:
"We shall get you
through, sa, like a fiddle, and hope a please you when we get you through, sa.
Old 'ooman at home, sa:" chuckling very much. "Outside gentleman, sa,
he often remember old 'ooman at home, sa," grinning again.
"Ay, ay, we'll
take care of the old woman. Don't be afraid."
The black driver grins
again, but there is another hole, and, beyond that, another bank, close before
us. So he stops short: cries (to the horses again) "Easy. Easy den. Ease.
Steady. Hi. Jiddy. Pill. Ally. Loo," but never "Lee!" until we are
reduced to the very last extremity, and are in the midst of difficulties,
extrication from which appears to be all but impossible.
And so we do the ten
miles or thereabouts in two hours and a half; breaking no bones, though
bruising a great many; and, in short, getting through the distance "like a
fiddle."
This singular kind of
coaching terminates at Fredericksburg, whence there is a railway to Richmond.
The tract of country through which it takes its course was once productive: but
the soil has been exhausted by the system of employing a great amount of slave
labour in forcing crops, without strengthening the land: and it is now little
better than a sandy desert overgrown with trees. Dreary and uninteresting as
its aspect is, I was glad to the heart to find anything on which one of the
curses of this horrible institution has fallen; and had greater pleasure in
contemplating the withered ground than the richest and most thriving
cultivation in the same place could possibly have afforded me.
In this district, as in
all others where slavery sits brooding (I have frequently heard this admitted,
even by those who are its warmest advocates), there is an air of ruin and decay
abroad, which is inseparable from the system. The barns and outhouses are
mouldering away; the sheds are patched and half roofless; the log-cabins (built
in Virginia with external chimneys made of clay or wood) are squalid in the
last degree. There is no look of decent comfort anywhere. The miserable
stations by the railway side; the great wild woodyards, whence the engine is
supplied with fuel; the negro children rolling on the ground before the cabin
doors, with dogs and pigs; the biped beasts of burden slinking past: gloom and
dejection are upon them all.
In the negro car
belonging to the train in which we made this journey were a mother and her
children who had just been purchased; the husband and father being left behind
with their old owner. The children cried the whole way, and the mother was
misery's picture. The champion of Life, Liberty, and the Pursuit of Happiness,
who had bought them, rode in the train; and, every time we stopped, got down to
see that they were safe. The black in Sinbad's Travels, with one eye in the
middle of his forehead which shone like a burning coal, was nature's aristocrat
compared with this white gentleman.
It was between six and
seven o'clock in the evening when we drove to the hotel: in front of which, and
on the top of the broad flight of steps leading to the door, two or three
citizens were balancing themselves on rocking-chairs, and smoking cigars. We
found it a very large and elegant establishment, and were as well entertained
as travellers need desire to be. The climate being a thirsty one, there was
never, at any hour of the day, a scarcity of loungers in the spacious bar, or a
cessation of the mixing of cool liquors: but they were a merrier people here,
and had musical instruments playing to them o' nights, which it was a treat to
hear again.
The next day, and the
next, we rode and walked about the town, which is delightfully situated on
eight hills overhanging James River; a sparkling stream, studded here and there
with bright islands, or brawling over broken rocks. Although it was yet but the
middle of March, the weather in this southern temperature was extremely warm;
the peach-trees and magnolias were in full bloom; and the trees were green. ln
a low ground among the hills is a valley known as "Bloody Run," from
a terrible conflict with the Indians which once occurred there. It is a good place
for such a struggle, and, like every other spot I saw associated with any
legend of that wild people now so rapidly fading from the earth, interested me
very much
The city is the seat of
the local Parliament of Virginia; and, in its shady legislative halls, some
orators were drowsily holding forth to the hot noonday. By dint of constant
repetition, however, these constitutional sights had very little more interest
for me than so many parochial vestries; and I was glad to exchange this one for
a lounge in a well-arranged public library of some ten thousand volumes, and a
visit to a tobacco manufactory, where the workmen were all slaves.
I saw in this place the
whole process of picking, rolling, pressing, drying, packing in casks, and
branding. All the tobacco thus dealt with was in course of manufacture for
chewing; and one would have supposed there was enough in that one storehouse to
have filled even the comprehensive jaws of America. In this form the weed looks
like the oil-cake on which we fatten cattle; and, even without reference to its
consequences, is sufficiently uninviting.
Many of the working
appeared to be strong men, and it is hardly necessary to add that they were all
labouring quietly then. After two o'clock in the day they are allowed to sing,
a certain number at a time. The hour striking while I was there, some twenty
sang a hymn in parts, and sang it by no means ill; pursuing their work
meanwhile. A bell rang as I was about to leave, and they all poured forth into
a building on the opposite side of the street to dinner. I said several times
that I should like to see them at their meal; but, as the gentleman to whom I
mentioned this desire appeared to be suddenly taken rather deaf, I did not
pursue the request. Of their appearance I shall have something to say
presently.
On the following day I
visited a plantation or farm, of about twelve hundred acres, on the opposite
bank of the river. Here again, although I went down with the owner of the
estate, to "the quarter," as that part of it in which the slaves live
is called, I was not invited to enter into any of their huts. All I saw of them
was, that they were very crazy, wretched cabins, near to which groups of
half-naked children basked in the sun, or wallowed on the dusty ground. But I
believe that this gentleman is a considerate and excellent master, who
inherited his fifty slaves, and is neither a buyer nor a seller of human stock;
and I am sure, from my own observation and conviction, that he is a
kind-hearted, worthy man.
The planter's house was
an airy, rustic dwelling, that brought Defoe's description of such places
strongly to my recollection. The day was very warm, but the blinds being all
closed, and the windows and doors set wide open, a shady coolness rustled
through the rooms, which was exquisitely refreshing after the glare and heat
without. Before the windows was an open piazza, where, in what they call the
hot weather--whatever that may be--they sling hammocks, and drink and doze
luxuriously. I do not know how their cool refections may taste within the
hammocks, but, having experience, I can report that, out of them, the mounds of
ices and the bowls of mint-julep and sherry-cobbler they make in these
latitudes, are refreshments never to be thought of afterwards, in summer, by
those who would preserve contented minds.
There are two bridges
across the river: one belongs to the railroad, and the other, which is a very
crazy affair, is the private property of some old lady in the neighbourhood,
who levies tolls upon the townspeople. Crossing this bridge on my way back, I
saw a notice painted on the gate, cautioning all persons to drive slowly: under
a penalty, if the offender were a white man, of five dollars; if a negro,
fifteen stripes.
The same decay and
gloom that overhang the way by which it is approached, hover above the town of
Richmond. There are pretty villas and cheerful houses in its streets, and
Nature smiles upon the country round; but jostling its handsome residences,
like slavery itself going hand-in-hand with many lofty virtues, are deplorable
tenements, fences unrepaired, walls crumbling into ruinous heaps. Hinting
gloomily at things below the surface, these, and many other tokens of the same
description, force themselves upon the notice, and are remembered with
depressing influence, when livelier features are forgotten.
To those who are
happily unaccustomed to them, the countenances in the streets and
labouring-places, too, are shocking. All men who know that there are laws
against instructing slaves, of which the pains and penalties greatly exceed in
their amount the fines imposed on those who maim and torture them, must be
prepared to find their faces very low in the scale of intellectual expression.
But the darkness--not of skin, but mind--which meets the stranger's eye at
every turn; the brutalising and blotting out of all fairer characters traced by
Nature's hand; immeasurably outdo his worst belief. That travelled creation of
the great satirist's brain, who, fresh from living among horses, peered from a
high casement down upon his own kind with trembling horror, was scarcely more
repelled and daunted by the sight than those who look upon some of these faces
for the first time must surely do.
I left the last of them
behind me in the person of a wretched drudge, who, after running to and fro all
day till midnight, and moping in his stealthy winks of sleep upon the stairs
between-whiles, was washing the dark passages at four o'clock in the morning;
and went upon my way with a grateful heart that I was not doomed to live where
slavery was, and had never had my senses blunted to its wrongs and horrors in a
slave-rocked cradle.
It had been my
intention to proceed by James River and Chesapeake Bay to Baltimore; but one of
the steamboats being absent from her station through some accident, and the
means of conveyance being consequently rendered uncertain, we returned to
Washington by the way we had come (there were two constables on board the
steamboat, in pursuit of runaway slaves), and, halting there again for one
night, went on to Baltimore next afternoon. The most comfortable of all the
hotels of which I had any experience in the United States, and they were not a
few, is Barnum's, in that city: where the English traveller will find curtains
to his bed, for the first and probably the last time in America (this is a
disinterested remark, for I never use them); and where he will be likely to
have enough water for washing himself, which is not at all a common case.
This capital of the
State of Maryland is a bustling, busy town, with a great deal of traffic of
various kinds, and in particular of water commerce. That portion of the town
which it most favours is none of the cleanest, it is true; but the upper part
is of a very different character, and has many agreeable streets and public
buildings. The Washington Monument, which is a handsome pillar with a statue on
its summit; the Medical College; and the Battle Monument in memory of an
engagement with the British at North Point; are the most conspicuous among them.
There is a very good
prison in this city, and the State Penitentiary is also among its institutions.
In this latter establishment there were two curious cases.
One was that of a young
man who had been tried for the murder of his father. The evidence was entirely
circumstantial, and was very conflicting and doubtful; nor was it possible to
assign any motive which could have tempted him to the commission of so
tremendous a crime. He had been tried twice; and, on the second occasion, the
jury felt so much hesitation in convicting him, that they found a verdict of
manslaughter, or murder in the second degree; which it could not possibly be,
as there had, beyond all doubt, been no quarrel or provocation, and if he were
guilty at all, he was unquestionably guilty of murder in its broadest and worst
signification.
The remarkable feature
in the case was, that if the unfortunate deceased were not really murdered by
this own son of his, he must have been murdered by his own brother. The
evidence lay, in a most remarkable manner, between those two.
On all the suspicious
points, the dead man's brother was the witness; all the explanations for the
prisoner (some of them extremely plausible) went, by construction and
inference, to inculpate him as plotting to fix the guilt upon his nephew. It
must have been one of them; and the jury had to decide between two sets of
suspicions, almost equally unnatural, unaccountable, and strange.
The other case was that
of a man who once went to a certain distiller's, and stole a copper measure
containing a quantity of liquor. He was pursued and taken with the property in
his possession, and was sentenced to two years' imprisonment On coming out of
the gaol at the expiration of that term, he went back to the same distiller's,
and stole the same copper measure, containing the same quantity of liquor.
There was not the slightest reason to suppose that the man wished to return to
prison: indeed, everything, but the commission of the offence, made directly
against that assumption. There are only two ways of accounting for this
extraordinary proceeding. One is that, after undergoing so much for this copper
measure, he conceived he had established a sort of claim and right to it. The
other that, by dint of long thinking about, it had become a monomania with him,
and had acquired a fascination which he found it impossible to resist: swelling
from an Earthly Copper Gallon into an Ethereal Golden Vat.
After remaining here a
couple of days, I bound myself to a rigid adherence to the plan I had laid down
so recently, and resolved to set forward on our western journey without any
more delay. Accordingly, having reduced the luggage within the smallest
possible compass (by sending back to New York, to be forwarded to us in Canada,
so much of it as was not absolutely wanted); and having procured the necessary
credentials to banking-houses on the way; and having, moreover, looked for two
evenings at the setting sun, with as well-defined an idea of the country before
us as if we had been going to travel into the very centre of that planet; we
left Baltimore by another railway at half-past eight in the morning, and
reached the town of York, some sixty miles off, by the early dinner-time of the
hotel which was the starting-place of the four-horse coach wherein we were to
proceed to Harrisburg.
This conveyance, the
box of which I was fortunate enough to secure, had come down to meet us at the
railroad station, and was as muddy and cumbersome as usual. As more passengers
were waiting for us at the inn door, the coachman observed under his breath, in
the usual self-communicative voice, looking the while at his mouldy harness as
if it were to that he was addressing himself,
"I expect we shall
want the big coach."
I could not help
wondering within myself what the size of this big coach might be, and how many
persons it might be designed to hold; for the vehicle which was too small for
our purpose was something larger than two English heavy night coaches, and
might have been the twin brother of a French Diligence. My speculations were
speedily set at rest, however, for, as soon as we had dined, there came
rumbling up the street, shaking its sides like a corpulent giant, a kind of
barge on wheels. After much blundering and backing, it stopped at the door:
rolling heavily from side to side, when its other motion had ceased, as if it
had taken cold in its damp stable, and between that, and the having been
required in its dropsical old age to move at any faster pace than a walk, were
distressed by shortness of wind.
"If here ain't the
Harrisburg mail at last, and dreadful bright and smart to look at too,"
cried an elderly gentleman in some excitement, "darn my mother!"
I don't know what the
sensation of being darned may be, or whether a man's mother has a keener relish
or disrelish of the process than anybody else; but if the endurance of this
mysterious ceremony by the old lady in question had depended on the accuracy of
her son's vision in respect to the abstract brightness and smartness of the
Harrisburg mail, she would certainly have undergone its infliction. However,
they booked twelve people inside; and the luggage (including such trifles as a
large rocking-chair and a good-sized dining-table) being at length made fast
upon the roof, we started off in great state.
At the door of another
hotel there was another passenger to be taken up.
"Any room,
sir?" cries the new passenger to the coachman.
"Well, there's
room enough," replies the coachman, without getting down, or even looking
at him.
"There ain't no
room at all, sir," bawls a gentleman inside. Which another gentleman (also
inside) confirms, by predicting that the attempt to introduce any more
passengers "won't fit nohow."
The new passenger,
without any expression of anxiety, looks into the coach, and then looks up at
the coachman. "Now, how do you mean to fix it?" says he after a
pause: "for I must go."
The coachman employs
himself in twisting the lash of his whip into a knot, and takes no more notice
of the question: clearly signifying that it is anybody's business but his, and
that the passengers would do well to fix it among themselves. In this state of
things, matters seem to be approximating to a fix of another kind, when another
inside passenger in a corner, who is nearly suffocated, cries faintly,
"I'll get
out."
This is no matter of
relief or self-congratulation to the driver, for his immovable philosophy is
perfectly undisturbed by anything that happens in the coach. Of all things in
the world, the coach would seem to be the very last upon his mind. The exchange
is made, however, and then the passenger who has given up his seat makes a
third upon the box, seating himself in what he calls the middle: that is, with
half his person on my legs, and the other half on the driver's.
"Go ahead,
cap'en," cries the colonel, who directs.
"Go-lang!"
cries the cap'en to his company, the horses, and away we go.
We took up at a rural
bar-room, after we had gone a few miles, an intoxicated gentleman who climbed
upon the roof among the luggage, and subsequently slipping off without hurting
himself, was seen in the distant perspective reeling back to the grog-shop
where we had found him. We also parted with more of our freight at different
times, so that when we came to change horses, I was again alone outside.
The coachmen always
change with the horses, and are usually as dirty as the coach. The first was
dressed like a very shabby English baker; the second like a Russian peasant:
for he wore a loose purple camlet robe with a fur collar, tied round his waist
with a parti-coloured worsted sash; grey trousers; light blue gloves; and a cap
of bear-skin. It had by this time come on to rain very heavily, and there was a
cold damp mist besides, which penetrated to the skin. I was very glad to take
advantage of a stoppage, and get down to stretch my legs, shake the water off
my great-coat, and swallow the usual anti-temperance recipe for keeping out the
cold.
When I mounted to my
seat again, I observed a new parcel lying on the coach roof, which I took to be
a rather large fiddle in a brown bag. In the course of a few miles, however, I
discovered that it had a glazed cap at one end and a pair of muddy shoes at the
other; and further observation demonstrated it to be a small boy in a
snuff-coloured coat, with his arms quite pinioned to his sides, by deep forcing
into his pockets. He was, I presume, a relative or friend of the coachman's, as
he lay atop of the luggage, with his face towards the rain; and, except when a
change of position brought his shoes in contact with my hat, he appeared to be
asleep. At last, on some occasion of our stopping, this thing slowly upreared
itself to the height of three feet six, and fixing its eyes on me, observed in
piping accents, with a complaisant yawn, half quenched in an obliging air of
friendly patronage, "Well now, stranger, I guess you find this a'most like
an English arternoon, hey?"
The scenery, which had
been tame enough at first, was, for the last ten or twelve miles, beautiful.
Our road wound through the pleasant valley of the Susquehanna; the river, dotted
with innumerable green islands, lay upon our right; and on the left, a steep
ascent, craggy with broken rock, and dark with pine-trees. The mist, wreathing
itself into a hundred fantastic shapes, moved solemnly upon the water; and the
gloom of evening gave to all an air of mystery and silence which greatly
enhanced its natural interest.
We crossed this river
by a wooden bridge, roofed and covered in on all sides, and nearly a mile in
length. It was profoundly dark; perplexed, with great beams crossing and
recrossing it at every possible angle; and through the broad chinks and
crevices of the floor the rapid river gleamed, far down below, like a legion of
eyes. We had no lamps; and as the horses stumbled and floundered through this
place, towards the distant speck of dying light, it seemed interminable. I
really could not at first persuade myself, as we rumbled heavily on, filling
the bridge with hollow noises, and I held down my head to save it from the
rafters above, but that I was in a painful dream; for I have often dreamed of
toiling through such places, and as often argued, even at the time, "this
cannot be reality."
At length, however, we
emerged upon the streets of Harrisburg, whose feeble lights, reflected dismally
from the wet ground, did not shine out upon a very cheerful city. We were soon
established in a snug hotel, which, though smaller and far less splendid than
many we put up at, is raised above them all in my remembrance, by having for
its landlord the most obliging, considerate, and gentlemanly person I ever had
to deal with.
As we were not to
proceed upon our journey until the afternoon, I walked out, after breakfast the
next morning, to look about me; and was duly shown a model prison on the
solitary system, just erected, and as yet without an inmate; the trunk of an
old tree to which Harris, the first settler here (afterwards buried under it)
was tied by hostile Indians, with his funeral pile about him, when he was saved
by the timely appearance of a friendly party on the opposite shore of the
river; the local legislature (for there was another of those bodies here,
again, in full debate); and the other curiosities of the town.
I was very much
interested in looking over a number of treaties made from time to time with the
poor Indians, signed by the different chiefs at the period of their
ratification, and preserved in the office of the Secretary to the Commonwealth.
These signatures, traced of course by their own hands, are rough drawings of
the creatures or weapons they were called after. Thus, the Great Turtle makes a
crooked pen-and-ink outline of a great turtle; the Buffalo sketches a buffalo;
the War Hatchet sets a rough image of that weapon for his mark. So with the
Arrow, the Fish, the Scalp, the Big Canoe, and all of them.
I could not but
think--as I looked at these feeble and tremulous productions of hands which
could draw the longest arrow to the head in a stout elk-horn bow, or split a
bead or feather with a rifle ball--of Crabbe's musings over the Parish
Register, and the irregular scratches made with a pen by men who would plough a
lengthy furrow straight from end to end. Nor could I help bestowing many
sorrowful thoughts upon the simple warriors whose hands and hearts were set
there in all truth and honesty; and who only learned in course of time from
white men how to break their faith, and quibble out of forms and bonds. I
wondered, too, how many times the credulous Big Turtle, or trusting Little
Hatchet, had put his mark to treaties which were falsely read to him; and had
signed away, he knew not what, until it went and cast him loose upon the new
possessors of the land, a savage indeed.
Our host announced,
before our early dinner, that some members of the legislative body proposed to
do us the honour of calling. He had kindly yielded up to us his wife's own
little parlour, and when I begged that he would show them in, I saw him look
with painful apprehension at its pretty carpet; though, being otherwise
occupied at the time, the cause of his uneasiness did not occur to me.
It certainly would have
been more pleasant to all parties concerned, and would not, I think, have
compromised their independence in any material degree, if some of these
gentlemen had not only yielded to the prejudice in favour of spittoons, but had
abandoned themselves, for the moment, even to the conventional absurdity of
pocket-handkerchiefs.
It still continued to
rain heavily, and when we went down to the Canal Boat (for that was the mode of
conveyance by which we were to proceed) after dinner, the weather was as
unpromising and obstinately wet as one would desire to see. Nor was the sight
of this canal boat, in which we were to spend three or four days, by any means
a cheerful one; as it involved some uneasy speculations concerning the disposal
of the passengers at night, and opened a wide field of inquiry touching the
other domestic arrangements of the establishment, which was sufficiently
disconcerting.
However, there it
was--a barge with a little house in it, viewed from the outside; and a caravan
at a fair, viewed from within: the gentlemen being accommodated as the
spectators usually are in one of those locomotive museums of penny wonders; and
the ladies being partitioned off by a red curtain, after the manner of the
dwarfs and giants in the same establishments, whose private lives are passed in
rather close exclusiveness.
We sat here, looking
silently at the row of little tables which extended down both sides of the
cabin, and listening to the rain as it dripped and pattered on the boat, and
plashed with a dismal merriment in the water, until the arrival of the railway
train, for whose final contribution to our stock of passengers our departure
was alone deferred. It brought a great many boxes, which were bumped and tossed
upon the roof, almost as painfully as if they had been deposited on one's own
head, without the intervention of a porter's knot; and several damp gentlemen,
whose clothes, on their drawing round the stove, began to steam again. No doubt
it would have been a thought more comfortable if the driving rain, which now
poured down more soakingly than ever, had admitted of a window being opened, or
if our number had been something less than thirty; but there was scarcely time
to think as much, when a train of three horses was attached to the tow-rope,
the boy upon the leader smacked his whip, the rudder creaked and groaned
complainingly, and we had begun our journey.
AS it continued to rain
most perseveringly, we all remained below: the damp gentlemen round the stove
gradually becoming mildewed by the action of the fire: and the dry gentlemen
lying at full length upon the seats, or slumbering uneasily with their faces on
the tables, or walking up and down the cabin, which it was barely possible for
a man of the middle height to do without making bald places on his head by
scraping it against the roof. At about six o'clock all the small tables were
put together to form one long table, and everybody sat down to tea, coffee,
bread, butter, salmon, shad, liver, steak, potatoes, pickles, ham, chops, black
puddings, and sausages.
"Will you
try," said my opposite neighbour, handing me a dish of potatoes broken up
in milk and butter, "will you try some of these fixings?"
There are few words
which perform such various duties as this word "fix." It is the Caleb
Quotem of the American vocabulary. You call upon a gentleman in a country town,
and his help informs you that he is "fixing himself" just now, but
will be down directly: by which you are to understand that he is dressing. You
inquire, on board a steamboat, of a fellow-passenger, whether breakfast will be
ready soon, and he tells you he should think so, for, when he was last below,
they were "fixing the tables:" in other words, laying the cloth. You
beg a porter to collect your luggage, and he entreats you not to be uneasy, for
he'll "fix it presently:" and if you complain of indisposition, you
are advised to have recourse to Doctor So-and-so, who will "fix you"
in no time.
One night I ordered a
bottle of mulled wine at an hotel where I was staying, and waited a long time
for it; at length it was put upon the table, with an apology from the landlord
that he feared it wasn't "fixed properly." And I recollect once, at a
stage-coach dinner, overhearing a very stern gentleman demand of a waiter who
presented him with a plate of underdone roast beef, "whether he called
that fixing God A'mighty's vittles?"
There is no doubt that
the meal, at which the invitation was tendered to me which has occasioned this
digression, was disposed of somewhat ravenously; and that the gentlemen thrust
the broad-bladed knives and the two-pronged forks further down their throats
than I ever saw the same weapons go before, except in the hands of a skilful
juggler: but no man sat down until the ladies were seated; or omitted any
little act of politeness which could contribute to their comfort. Nor did I
ever once, on any occasion, anywhere, during my rambles in America, see a woman
exposed to the slightest act of rudeness, incivility, or even inattention.
By the time the meal
was over, the rain, which seemed to have worn itself out by coming down so
fast, was nearly over too; and it became feasible to go on deck: which was a
great relief, notwithstanding its being a very small deck, and being rendered
still smaller by the luggage, which was heaped together in the middle under a
tarpaulin covering; leaving, on either side, a path so narrow, that it became a
science to walk to and fro without tumbling overboard into the canal. It was
somewhat embarrassing at first, too, to have to duck nimbly every five minutes
whenever the man at the helm cried "Bridge!" and sometimes, when the
cry was "Low Bridge," to lie down nearly flat. But custom
familiarises one to anything, and there were so many bridges that it took a
very short time to get used to this.
As night came on, and
we drew in sight of the first range of hills, which are the outposts of the
Alleghany Mountains, the scenery, which had been uninteresting hitherto, became
more bold and striking. The wet ground reeked and smoked after the heavy fall
of rain; and the croaking of the frogs (whose noise in these parts is almost
incredible) sounded as though a million of fairy teams with bells were
travelling through the air, and keeping pace with us. The night was cloudy yet,
but moonlight too: and when we crossed the Susquehanna River--over which there
is an extraordinary--wooden bridge with two galleries, one above the other, so
that, even there, two boat-teams meeting may pass without confusion--it was
wild and grand.
I have mentioned my
having been in some uncertainty and doubt, at first, relative to the sleeping
arrangements on board this boat. I remained in the same vague state of mind
until ten o'clock or thereabouts, when, going below, I found suspended, on
either side of the cabin, three long tiers of hanging bookshelves, designed
apparently for volumes of the small octavo size. Looking with greater attention
at these contrivances (wondering to find such literary preparations in such a
place), I descried on each shelf a sort of microscopic sheet and blanket; then
I began dimly to comprehend that the passengers were the library, and that they
were to be arranged edge-wise on these shelves till morning.
I was assisted to this
conclusion by seeing some of them gather round the master of the boat at one of
the tables, drawing lots with all the anxieties and passions of gamesters
depicted in their countenances; while others, with small pieces of cardboard in
their hands, were groping among the shelves in search of numbers corresponding
with those they had drawn. As soon as any gentleman found his number, he took
possession of it by immediately undressing himself and crawling into bed. The
rapidity with which an agitated gambler subsided into a snoring slumberer was
one of the most singular effects I have ever witnessed. As to the ladies, they
were already abed, behind the red curtain, which was carefully drawn and pinned
up the centre; though every cough, or sneeze, or whisper, behind this curtain
was perfectly audible before it, we had still a lively consciousness of their
society.
The politeness of the
person in authority had secured to me a shelf in a nook near this red curtain,
in some degree removed from the great body of sleepers: to which place I
retired, with many acknowledgments to him for his attention. I found it, on
after-measurement, just the width of an ordinary sheet of Bath post
letter-paper; and I was at first in some uncertainty as to the best means of
getting into it. But the shelf being, a bottom one I finally determined on
lying upon the floor, rolling gently in, stopping immediately I touched the
mattress, and remaining for the night with that side uppermost, whatever it
might be. Luckily, I came upon my back at exactly the right moment. I was much
alarmed, on looking upward, to see, by the shape of his half-yard of sacking
(which his weight had bent into an exceedingly tight bag), that there was a
very heavy gentleman above me, whom the slender cords seemed quite incapable of
holding; and I could not help reflecting upon the grief of my wife and family
in the event of his coming down in the night. But, as I could not have got up
again without a severe bodily struggle, which might have alarmed the ladies;
and as I had nowhere to go to even if I had; I shut my eyes upon the danger,
and remained there.
One of two remarkable
circumstances is indisputably a fact, with reference to that class of society
who travel in these boats. Either they carry their restlessness to such a pitch
that they never sleep at all; or they expectorate in dreams, which would be a
remarkable mingling of the real and ideal. All night long, and every night, on
this canal, there was a perfect storm and tempest of spitting; and once my
coat, being in the very centre of a hurricane sustained by five gentlemen
(which moved vertically, strictly carrying out Reid's Theory of the Law of
Storms), I was fain the next morning to lay it on the deck, and rub it down
with fair water before it was in a condition to be worn again.
Between five and six
o'clock in the morning we got up, and some of us were on deck, to give them an
opportunity of taking the shelves down; while others, the morning being very
cold, crowded round the rusty stove, cherishing the newly-kindled fire, and
filling the grate with those voluntary contributions of which they had been so
liberal all night. The washing accommodations were primitive. There was a tin
ladle chained to the deck, with which every gentleman who thought it necessary
to cleanse himself (many were superior to this weakness) fished the dirty water
out of the canal, and poured it into a tin basin, secured in like manner. There
was also a jack-towel. And, hanging up before a little looking-glass in the
bar, in the immediate vicinity of the bread and cheese and biscuits, were a
public comb and hair-brush.
At eight o'clock, the
shelves being taken down and put away, and the tables joined together,
everybody sat down to the tea, coffee, bread, butter, salmon, shad, liver,
steak, potatoes, pickles, ham, chops, black puddings, and sausages, all over
again. Some were fond of compounding this variety, and having it all on their
plates at once. As each gentleman got through his own personal amount of tea,
coffee, bread, butter, salmon, shad, liver, steak, potatoes, pickles, ham,
chops, black puddings, and sausages, he rose up and walked off. When everybody
had done with everything, the fragments were cleared away: and one of the
waiters, appearing anew in the character of a barber, shaved such of the
company as desired to be shaved; while the remainder looked on, or yawned over
their newspapers. Dinner was breakfast again, without the tea and coffee; and
supper and breakfast were identical.
There was a man on
board this boat with a light, fresh-coloured face, and a pepper-and-salt suit
of clothes, who was the most inquisitive fellow that can possibly be imagined.
He never spoke otherwise than interrogatively. He was an embodied inquiry.
Sitting down or standing up, still or moving, walking the deck or taking his
meals, there he was, with a great note of interrogation in each eye, two in his
cocked ears, two more in his turned-up nose and chin, at least half-a-dozen
more about the corners of his mouth, and the largest one of all in his hair,
which was brushed pertly off his forehead in a flaxen clump. Every button in
his clothes said, "Eh? What's that? Did you speak? Say that again, will
you?" He was always wide awake, like the enchanted bride who drove her
husband frantic; always restless; always thirsting for answers; perpetually
seeking and never finding. There never was such a curious man.
I wore a fur great-coat
at that time, and, before we were well clear of the wharf, he questioned me
concerning it, and its price, and where I bought it, and when, and what fur it
was, and what it weighed, and what it cost. Then he took notice of my watch,
and asked what that cost, and whether it was a French watch, and where I got
it, and how I got it, and whether I bought it or had it given me, and how it
went, and where the keyhole was, and when I wound it, every night or every
morning, and whether I ever forgot to wind it at all, and if I did, what then?
Where had I been to last, and where was I going next, and where was I going
after that, and had I seen the President, and what did he say, and what did I
say, and what did he say when I had said that? Eh? Lor, now! do tell!
Finding that nothing
would satisfy him, I evaded his questions after the first score or two, and in
particular pleaded ignorance respecting the name of the fur whereof the coat
was made. I am unable to say whether this was the reason, but that coat
fascinated him ever afterwards; he usually kept close behind me as I walked,
and moved as I moved, that he might look at it the better; and he frequently dived
into narrow places after me at the risk of his life, that he might have the
satisfaction of passing his hand up the back, and rubbing it the wrong way.
We had another odd
specimen on board of a different kind. This was a thin-faced, spare-figured man
of middle age and stature, dressed in a dusty drabbish-coloured suit, such as I
never saw before. He was perfectly quiet during the first part of the journey:
indeed, I don't remember having so much as seen him until he was brought out by
circumstances, as great men often are. The conjunction of events which made him
famous happened, briefly, thus.
The canal extends to
the foot of the mountain, and there, of course, it stops; the passengers being
conveyed across it by land carriage, and taken on afterwards by another canal
boat, the counterpart of the first, which awaits them on the other side. There
are two canal lines of passage boats; one is called the Express, and one (a
cheaper one) the Pioneer. The Pioneer gets first to the mountain, and waits for
the Express people to come up; both sets of passengers being conveyed across it
at the same time. We were the Express company; but when we had crossed the
mountain, and had come to the second boat, the proprietors took it into their
heads to draft all the Pioneers into it likewise, so that we were
five-and-forty at least, and the accession of passengers was not at all of that
kind which improved the prospect of sleeping at night. Our people grumbled at
this, as people do in such cases; but suffered the boat to be towed off with
the whole freight aboard nevertheless; and away we went down the canal. At home
I should have protested lustily, but, being a foreigner here, I held my peace.
Not so this passenger. He cleft a path among the people on deck (we were nearly
all on deck), and, without addressing anybody whomsoever, soliloquised as
follows:
"This may suit
you, this may, but it don't suit me. This may be all very well with Down
Easters, and men of Boston raising, but it won't suit my figure nohow; and no two
ways about that; and so I tell you. Now! I'm from the brown forests of the
Mississippi, I am, and when the sun shines on me, it does shine--a little. It
don't glimmer where I live, the sun don't. No. I'm a brown forester, I am. I
an't a Johnny Cake. There are no smooth skins where I live. We're rough men
there. Rather. If Down Easters and men of Boston raising like this, I'm glad of
it, but I'm none of that raising nor of that breed. No. This company wants a
little fixing, it does. I'm the wrong sort of man for 'em, I am. They won't
like me, they won't. This is piling of it up a little too mountaínous, this
is." At the end of every one of these short sentences he turned upon his
heel, and walked the other way; checking himself abruptly when he had finished
another short sentence, and turning back again.
It is impossible for me
to say what terrific meaning was hidden in the words of this brown forester,
but I know that the other passengers looked on in a sort of admiring horror,
and that presently the boat was put back to the wharf, and as many of the
Pioneers as could be coaxed or bullied into going away were got rid of.
When we started again,
some of the boldest spirits on board made bold to say to the obvious occasion
of this improvement in our prospects, "Much obliged to you, sir:"
whereunto the brown forester (waving his hand, and still walking up and down as
before), replied, "No, you an't. You're none o' my raising. You may act
for yourselves, you may. I have pinted out the way. Down Easters and Johnny
Cakes can follow if they please. I an't a Johnny Cake, I an't. I am from the
brown forests of the Mississippi, I am"--and so on, as before. He was
unanimously voted one of the tables for his bed at night--there is a great
contest for the tables--in consideration of his public services: and he had the
warmest corner by the stove throughout the rest of the journey. But I never
could find out that he did anything except sit there; nor did I hear him speak
again until, in the midst of the bustle and turmoil of getting
177
the luggage ashore in
the dark at Pittsburg, I stumbled over him as he sat smoking a cigar on the
cabin steps, and heard him muttering to himself, with a short laugh of
defiance, "I an't a Johnny Cake, I an't. I'm from the brown forests of the
Mississippi, I am, damme!" I am inclined to argue, from this, that he had
never left off saying so; but I could not make [an] affidavit of that part of
the story, if required to do so by my Queen and Country.
As we have not reached
Pittsburg yet, however, in the order of our narrative, I may go on to remark
that breakfast was perhaps the least desirable meal of the day, as, in addition
to the many savoury odours arising from the eatables already mentioned, there
were whiffs of gin, whiskey, brandy, and rum from the little bar hard by, and a
decided seasoning of stale tobacco. Many of the gentlemen passengers were far
from particular in respect of their linen, which was in some cases as yellow as
the little rivulets that had trickled from the corners of their mouths in
chewing, and dried there. Nor was the atmosphere quite free from zephyr
whisperings of the thirty beds which had just been cleared away, and of which
we were further and more pressingly reminded by the occasional appearance on
the table-cloth of a kind of Game not mentioned in the Bill of Fare.
And yet despite these
oddities--and even they had, for me at least, a humour of their own--there was
much in this mode of travelling which I heartily enjoyed at the time, and look
back upon with great pleasure. Even the running up, bare-necked, at five
o'clock in the morning, from the tainted cabin to the dirty deck; scooping up
the icy water, plunging one's head into it, and drawing it out all fresh and
glowing with the cold; was a good thing. The fast, brisk walk upon the
towing-path, between that time and breakfast, when every vein and artery seemed
to tingle with health; the exquisite beauty of the opening day, when light came
gleaming of from everything; the lazy motion of the boat, when one lay idly on
the deck, looking through, rather than at, the deep blue sky; the gliding on at
night, so noiselessly, past frowning hills, sullen with dark trees, an
sometimes angry in one red burning spot high up, where unseen men lay crouching
round a fire; the shining out of the bright stars, undisturbed by noise of
wheels or steam, or any other sound than the liquid rippling of the water as
the boat went on: all these were pure delights.
Then, there were new
settlements and detached log-cabins and frame-houses, full of interest for
strangers from an old country: cabins with simple ovens, outside, made of clay;
ad lodgings for the pigs nearly as good as many of the human quarters; broken
windows, patched with worn-out hats, old clothes, old boards, fragments of
blankets and paper; and homemade dressers standing in the open air without the
door, whereon was ranged the household store, not hard to count, of earthen
jars and pots. The eye was pained to see the stumps of great trees thickly
strewn in every field of wheat, and seldom to lose the eternal swamp and dull
morass, with hundreds of rotten trunks and twisted branches steeped in its
unwholesome water. It was quite sad and oppressive to come upon great tracts
where settlers had been burning down the trees, and where their wounded bodies
lay about like those of murdered creatures, while here and there some charred
and blackened giant reared aloft two withered arms, and seemed to call down
curses on his foes. Sometimes, at night, the way wound through some lonely
gorge, like a mountain pass in Scotland, shining and coldly glittering in the
light of the moon, and so closed in by high steep hills all round, that there
seemed to be no egress save through the narrower path by which we had come,
until one rugged hill-side seemed to open, and, shutting out the moonlight as
we passed into its gloomy throat, wrapped our new course in shade and darkness.
We had left Harrisburg
on Friday. On Sunday morning we arrived at the foot of the mountain, which is
crossed by railroad. There are ten inclined planes; five ascending, and five
descending; the carriages are dragged up the former, and let slowly down the latter,
by means of stationary engines; the comparatively level spaces between being
traversed, sometimes by horse, and sometimes by engine power, as the case
demands. Occasionally the rails are laid upon the extreme verge of a giddy
precipice; and looking from the carriage window, the traveller gazes sheer
down, without a stone or scrap of fence between, into the mountain depths
below. The journey is very carefully made, however; only two carriages
travelling together; and, while proper precautions are taken, is not to be
dreaded for its dangers.
It was very pretty,
travelling thus at a rapid pace along the heights of the mountain in a keen
wind, to look down into a valley full of light and softness; catching glimpses,
through the tree-tops, of scattered cabins; children running to the doors; dogs
bursting out to bark, whom we could see without hearing; terrified pigs
scampering homewards; families sitting out in their rude gardens; cows gazing
upward with a stupid indifference; men in their shirt-sleeves, looking on at
their unfinished houses, planning out to-morrow's work; and we riding onward,
high above them, like a whirlwind. It was amusing, too, when we had dined, and
rattled down a steep pass, having no other moving power than the weight of the
carriages themselves, to see the engine, released long after us, come buzzing
down alone, like a great insect, its back of green and gold so shining in the
sun, that if it had spread a pair of wings and soared away, no one would have
had occasion, as I fancied, for the least surprise. But it stopped short of us
in a very business-like manner when we reached the canal; and, before we left
the wharf, went panting up this hill again, with the passengers who had waited
our arrival for the means of traversing the road by which we had come.
On the Monday evening,
furnace fires and clanking hammers on the banks of the canal warned us that we
approached the termination of this part of our journey. After going through
another dreamy place--a long aqueduct across the Alleghany River, which was
stranger than the bridge at Harrisburg, being a vast, low, wooden chamber full
of water--we emerged upon that ugly confusion of backs of buildings and crazy
galleries and stairs which always abuts on water, whether it be river, sea, canal,
or ditch: and were at Pittsburg.
Pittsburg is like
Birmingham in England; at least, its townspeople say so. Setting aside the
streets, the shops, the houses, waggons, factories, public buildings, and
population, perhaps it may be. It certainly lies a great quantity of smoke
hanging about it, and is famous for its iron-works. Besides the prison to which
I have already referred, this town contains a pretty arsenal and other
institutions. It is very beautifully situated on the Alleghany River, over which
there are two bridges; and the villas of the wealthier citizens, sprinkled
about the high grounds in the neighbourhood, are pretty enough. We lodged at a
most excellent hotel, and were admirably served. As usual, it was full of
boarders, was very large, and had a broad colonnade to every story of the
house.
We tarried here three
days. Our next point was Cincinnati: and as this was a steamboat journey, and
western steamboats usually blow up one or two a week in the season, it was
advisable to collect opinions in reference to the comparative safety of the
vessels bound that way, then lying in the river. One called the Messenger was
the best recommended. She had been advertised to start positively every day for
a fortnight or so, and had not gone yet, nor did her captain seem to have any
very fixed intention on the subject. But this is the custom: for if the law
were to bind down a free and independent citizen to keep his word with the
public, what would become of the liberty of the subject? Besides, it is in the
way of trade. And if passengers be decoyed in the way of trade, and people be
inconvenienced in the way of trade, what man, who is a sharp tradesman himself,
shall say, "We must put a stop to this?"
Impressed by the deep
solemnity of the public announcement, I (being then ignorant of these usages)
was for hurrying on board in a breathless state immediately; but receiving
private and confidential information that the boat would certainly not start
until Friday, April the First, we made ourselves very comfortable in the
meanwhile, and went on board at noon that day.
THE Messenger was one
among a crowd of high-pressure steamboats clustered together by the wharf-side,
which, looked down upon from the rising ground that forms the landing-place,
and backed by the lofty bank on the opposite side of the river, appeared no
larger than so many floating models. She had some forty passengers on board,
exclusive of the poorer persons on the lower deck; and in half an hour, or
less, proceeded on her way.
We had, for ourselves,
a tiny state-room with two berths in it, opening out of the ladies' cabin.
There was, undoubtedly, something satisfactory in this "location,"
inasmuch as it was in the stern, and we had been a great many times very
gravely recommended to keep as far aft as possible, "because the
steamboats generally blew up forward." Nor was this an unnecessary
caution, as the occurrence and circumstances of more than one such fatality
during our stay sufficiently testified. Apart from this source of
self-congratulation, it was an unspeakable relief to have any place, no matter
how confined, where one could be alone: and as the row of little chambers, of
which this was one, had each a second glass door besides that in the ladies'
cabin, which opened on a narrow gallery outside the vessel, where the other
passengers seldom came, and where one could sit in peace and gaze upon the
shifting prospect, we took possession of our new quarters with much pleasure.
If the native packets I
have already described be unlike anything we are in the habit of seeing on
water, these western vessels are still more foreign to all the ideas we are
accustomed to entertain of boats. I hardly know what to liken them to, or how
to describe them.
In the first place,
they have no mast, cordage, tackle, rigging, or other such boat-like gear; nor
have they anything in their shape at all calculated to remind one of a boat's
head, stern, sides, or keel. Except that they are in the water, and display a
couple of paddle-boxes, they might be intended, for anything that appears to
the contrary, to perform some unknown service, high and dry, upon a
mountain-top. There is no visible deck even: nothing but a long, black, ugly
roof, covered with burnt-out feathery sparks; above which tower two iron
chimneys, and a hoarse escape valve, and a glass steerage house. Then, in order
as the eye descends towards the water, are the sides, and doors, and windows of
the state-rooms, jumbled as oddly together as though they formed a small
street, built by the varying tastes of a dozen men: the whole is supported on
beams and pillars resting on a dirty barge, but a few inches above the water's
edge: and in the narrow space between this upper structure and this barge's
deck are the furnace fires and machinery, open at the sides to every wind that
blows, and every storm of rain it drives along its path.
Passing one of these
boats at night, and seeing the great body of fire, exposed as I have just
described, that rages and roars beneath the frail pile of painted wood: the
machinery not warded off or guarded in any way, but doing its work in the midst
of the crowd of idlers and emigrants and children who throng the lower deck:
under the management, too, of reckless men whose acquaintance with its
mysteries may have been of six months' standing: one feels directly that the
wonder is, not that there should be so many fatal accidents, but that any
journey should be safely made.
Within, there is one
long narrow cabin, the whole length of the boat; from which the state-rooms
open on both sides. A small portion of it at the stern is partitioned off for
the ladies; and the bar is at the opposite extreme. There is a long table down
the centre, and at either end a stove. The washing apparatus is forward, on the
deck. It is a little better than on board the canal boat, but not much. In all
modes of travelling the American customs, with reference to the means of
personal cleanliness and wholesome ablution, are extremely negligent and
filthy; and I strongly incline to the belief that a considerable amount of
illness is referable to this cause.
We are to be on board
the Messenger three days: arriving at Cincinnati (barring accidents) on Monday
morning. There are three meals a day. Breakfast at seven, dinner at half-past
twelve, supper about six. At each there are a great many small dishes and
plates upon the table, with very little in them; so that, although there is
every appearance of a mighty "spread," there is seldom really more
than a joint: except for those who fancy slices of beet-root, shreds of dried
beef, complicated entanglements of yellow pickle, maize, Indian corn, apple
sauce, and pumpkin.
Some people fancy all
these little dainties together (and sweet preserves besides), by way of relish
to their roast pig. They are generally those dyspeptic ladies and gentlemen who
eat unheard-of quantities of hot corn bread (almost as good for the digestion
as a kneaded pincushion) for breakfast and for supper. Those who do not observe
this custom, and who help themselves several times instead, usually suck their
knives and forks meditatively until they have decided what to take next; then
pull them out of their mouths; put them in the dish; help themselves; and fall
to work again. At dinner there is nothing to drink upon the table but great
jugs full of cold water. Nobody says anything, at any meal, to anybody. All the
passengers are very dismal, and seem to have tremendous secrets weighing on
their minds. There is no conversation, no laughter, no cheerfulness, no
sociality, except in spitting; and that is done in silent fellowship round the
stove, when the meal is over. Every man sits down dull and languid; swallows
his fare as if breakfasts, dinners, and suppers were necessities of nature
never to be coupled with recreation or enjoyment; and, having bolted his food
in a gloomy silence, bolts himself in the same state. But for these animal
observances, you might suppose the whole male portion of the company to be the
melancholy ghosts of departed book-keepers, who had fallen dead at the desk:
such is their weary air of business and calculation. Undertakers on duty would
be sprightly beside them; and a collation of funeral baked meats, in comparison
with these meals, would be a sparkling festivity.
The people are all
alike, too. There is no diversity of character. They travel about on the same
errands, say and do the same things in exactly the same manner, and follow in
the same dull, cheerless round. All down the long table there is scarcely a man
who is in anything different from his neighbour. It is quite a relief to have,
sitting opposite, that little girl of fifteen with the loquacious chin: who, to
do her justice, acts up to it, and fully identifies Nature's handwriting; for,
of all the small chatterboxes that ever invaded the repose of drowsy ladies'
cabin, she is the first and foremost. The beautiful girl who sits a little
beyond her--farther down the table there--married the young man with the dark
whiskers, who sits beyond her, only last month. They are going to settle in the
very Far West, where he has lived four years, but where she has never been.
They were both overturned in a stage-coach the other day (a bad omen anywhere
else, where overturns are not so common), and his head, which bears the marks
of a recent wound, is bound up still. She was hurt, too, at the same time, and
lay insensible for some days; bright as her eyes are now.
Further down still,
sits a man who is going some miles beyond their place of destination to
"improve" a newly-discovered copper mine. He carries the
village--that is to be--with him: a few frame cottages, and an apparatus for
smelting the copper. He carries its people too. They are partly American and
partly Irish, and herd together on the lower deck; where they amused themselves
last evening till the night was pretty far advanced by alternately firing off
pistols and singing hymns.
They, and the very few
who have been left at table twenty minutes, rise and go away. We do so too;
and, passing through our little state-room, resume our seats in the quiet
gallery without.
A fine broad river
always, but in some parts much wider than in others: and then there is usually
a green island covered with trees, dividing it into two streams. Occasionally
we stop for a few minutes, maybe to take in wood, maybe for passengers, at some
small town or village (I ought to say city, every place is a city here); but
the banks are for thee most part deep solitudes, overgrown with trees, which,
hereabouts, are already in leaf and very green. For miles, and miles, and
miles, these solitudes are unbroken by any sign of human life or trace of human
footstep; nor is anything seen to move about them but the blue jay, whose
colour is so bright, and yet so delicate, that it looks like a flying flower.
At lengthened intervals a log-cabin, with its little space of cleared land
about it, nestles under a rising ground, and sends its thread of blue smoke
curling up into the sky. It stands in the comer of the poor field of wheat,
which is full of great unsightly stumps, like earthy butchers' blocks.
Sometimes the ground is only just now cleared: the felled trees lying yet upon
the soil: and the log-house only this morning begun. As we pass this clearing,
the settler leans upon his axe or hammer, and looks wistfully at the people
from the world. The children creep out of the temporary hut, which is like a
gipsy tent upon the ground, and clap their hands and shout. The dog only
glances round at us; and then looks up into his master's face again, as if he
were rendered uneasy by any suspension of the common business, and had nothing
more to do with pleasurers. And still there is the same eternal foreground. The
river has washed away its banks, and stately trees have fallen down into the
stream. Some have been there so long, that they are mere dry, grizzly
skeletons. Some have just toppled over, and, having earth yet about their
roots, are bathing their green heads in the river, and putting forth new shoots
and branches. Some are almost sliding down as you look at them. And some were
drowned so long ago, that their bleached arms start out from the middle of the
current, and seem to try to grasp the boat, and drag it under water.
Through such a scene as
this the unwieldy machine takes its hoarse sullen way: venting, at every
revolution of the paddles, a loud high-pressure blast; enough, one would think,
to waken up the host of Indians who lie buried in a great mound yonder: so old,
that mighty oaks and other forest trees have struck their roots into its earth;
and so high, that it is a hill even among the hills that Nature planted round
it. The very river, as though it shared one's feelings of compassion for the
extinct tribes who lived so pleasantly here, in their blessed ignorance of
white existence, hundreds of years ago, steals out of its way to ripple near
this mound: and there are few places where the Ohio sparkles more brightly than
in the Big Grave Creek.
All this I see as I sit
in the little stern-gallery mentioned just now. Evening slowly steals upon the
landscape, and changes it before me, when we stop to set some emigrants ashore.
Five men, as many
women, and a little girl. All their worldly goods are a bag, large chest, and
an old chair: one old, high-backed, rush-bottomed chair: a solitary settler in
itself. They are rowed ashore in the boat, while the vessel stands a little off
awaiting its return, the water being shallow. They are landed at the foot of a
high bank, on the summit of which are a few log-cabins, attainable only by a
long winding path. It is growing dusk; but the sun is very red, and shines in
the water, and on some of the tree-tops, like fire.
The men get out of the
boat first; help out the women; take out the bag, the chest, the chair; bid the
rowers "good-bye;" and shove the boat off for them. At the first
plash of the oars in the water, the oldest woman of the party sits down in the
old chair, close to the water's edge, without speaking a word. None of the
others sit down, though the chest is large enough for many seats. They all
stand where they landed, as if stricken into stone; and look after the boat. So
they remain, quite still and silent: the old woman and her old chair in the
centre; the bag and chest upon the shore, without anybody heeding them: all
eyes fixed upon the boat. It comes alongside, is made fast, the men jump on
board, the engine is put in motion, and we go hoarsely on again. There they
stand yet, without the motion of a hand. I can see them, through my glass,
when, in the distance and increasing darkness, they are mere specks to the eye:
lingering there still: the old woman in the old chair, and all the rest about
her: not stirring in the least degree. And thus I slowly lose them.
The night is dark, and
we proceed within the shadow of the wooded bank, which makes it darker. After
gliding past the sombre maze of boughs for a long time, we come upon an open
space where the tall trees are burning. The shape of every branch and twig is
expressed in a deep red glow, and as the light wind stirs and ruffles it, they
seem to vegetate in fire. It is such a sight as we read of in legends of
enchanted forests: saving that it is sad to see these noble works wasting away
so awfully, alone; and to think how many years must come and go before the
magic that created them will rear their like upon this ground again. But the
time will come: and when, in their changed ashes, the growth of centuries
unborn has struck its roots, the restless men of distant ages will repair to these
again unpeopled solitudes; and their fellows, in cities far away, that slumber
now, perhaps, beneath the rolling sea, will read, in language strange to any
ears in being now, but very old to them, of primeval forests where the axe was
never heard, and where the jungled ground was never trodden by a human foot.
Midnight and sleep blot
out these scenes and thoughts: and when the morning shines again, it gilds the
housetops of a lively city, before whose broad paved wharf the boat is moored:
with other boats, and flags, and moving wheels, and hum of men around it; as
though there were not a solitary or silent rood of ground within the compass of
a thousand miles.
Cincinnati is a
beautiful city; cheerful, thriving, and animated. I have not often seen a place
that commends itself so favourably and pleasantly to a stranger at the first
glance as this does: with its clean houses of red and white, its well-paved
roads, and footways bright tile. Nor does it become less prepossessing on a
closer acquaintance. The streets are broad and airy, the shops extremely good,
the private residences remarkable for their elegance and neatness. There is
something of invention and fancy in the varying styles of these latter
erections, which, after the dull company of the steamboat, is perfectly
delightful, as conveying an assurance that there are such qualities still in
existence. The disposition to ornament these pretty villas, and render them
attractive, leads to the culture of trees and flowers, and the laying out of
well-kept gardens, the sight of which, to those who walk along the streets, is
inexpressibly refreshing and agreeable. I was quite charmed with the appearance
of the town, and its adjoining suburb of Mount Auburn; from which the city,
lying in an amphitheatre of hills, forms a picture of remarkable beauty, and is
seen to great advantage.
There happened to be a
great Temperance Convention held here on the day after our arrival; and as the
order of march brought the procession under the windows of the hotel in which
we lodged, when they started in the morning, I had a good opportunity of seeing
it. It comprised several thousand men; the members of various "Washington
Auxiliary Temperance Societies;" and was marshalled by officers on
horseback, who cantered briskly up and down the line, with scarfs and ribbons
of bright colours fluttering out behind them gaily. There were bands of music,
too, and banners out of number: and it was a fresh, holiday-looking concourse
altogether. I was particularly pleased to see the Irishmen, who formed a
distinct society among themselves, and mustered very strong with their green
scarfs; carrying their national Harp, and their Portrait of Father Matthew,
high above the people's heads. They looked as jolly and good-humoured as ever;
and working (here) the hardest for their living, and doing any kind of sturdy
labour that came in their way, were the most independent fellows there, I
thought.
The banners were very
well painted, and flaunted down the street famously. There was the smiting of
the rock, and the gushing forth of the waters; and there was a temperate man
with "considerable of a hatchet" (as the standard-bearer would probably
have said), aiming a deadly blow at a serpent which was apparently about to
spring upon him from the top of a barrel of spirits. But the chief feature of
this part of the show was a huge allegorical device, borne among the ship
carpenters, on one side whereof the steamboat Alcohol was represented bursting
her boiler and exploding with a great crash, while upon the other, the good
ship Temperance sailed away with a fair wind, to the heart's content of the
captain, crew, and passengers.
After going round the
town, the procession repaired to a certain appointed place, where, as the
printed programme set forth, it would be received by the children of the
different free-schools, "singing Temperance Songs." I was prevented
from getting there in time to hear these Little Warblers, or to report upon
this novel kind of vocal entertainment: novel, at least, to me: but I found, in
a large open space, each society gathered round its own banners, and listening
in silent attention to its own orator. The speeches, judging from the little I
could hear of them, were certainly adapted to the occasion, as having that
degree of relationship to cold water which wet blankets may claim: but the main
thing was the conduct and appearance of the audience throughout the day, and
that was admirable and full of promise.
Cincinnati is
honourably famous for its free-schools, of which it has so many that no
person's child among its population can, by possibility, want the means of
education, which are extended, upon an average, to four thousand pupils
annually. I was only present in one of these establishments during the hours of
instruction. In the boys' department, which was full of little urchins (varying
in their ages, I should say, from six years old to ten or twelve), the master
offered to institute an extemporary examination of the pupils in algebra; a
proposal which, as I was by no means confident of my ability to detect mistakes
in that science, I declined with some alarm. In the girls' school, reading was
proposed; and, as I felt tolerably equal to that art, I expressed my
willingness to hear a class. Books were distributed accordingly, and some
half-dozen girls relieved each other in reading paragraphs from English
history. But it seemed to be a dry compilation, infinitely above their powers;
and when they had blundered through three or four dreary passages concerning
the treaty of Amiens, and other thrilling topics of the same nature (obviously
without comprehending ten words), I expressed myself quite satisfied. It is
very possible that they only mounted to this exalted stave in the Ladder of
Learning for the astonishment of a visitor; and that at other times they keep
upon its lower rounds; but I should have been much better pleased and satisfied
if I had heard them exercised in simpler lessons which they understood.
As in every other place
I visited, the Judges here were gentlemen of high character and attainments. I
was in one of the courts for a few minutes, and found it like those to which I
have already referred. A nuisance cause was trying; there were not many
spectators; and the witnesses, counsel, and jury formed a sort of family
circle, sufficiently jocose and snug.
The society with which
I mingled was intelligent, courteous, and agreeable. The inhabitants of
Cincinnati are proud of their city, as one of the most interesting in America:
and with good reason: for beautiful and thriving as it is now, and containing,
as it does, a population of fifty thousand souls, but two-and-fifty years have
passed away since the ground on which it stands (bought at that time for a few
dollars) was a wild wood, and its citizens were but a handful of dwellers in
scattered log-huts upon the river's shore.
LEAVING Cincinnati at
eleven o'clock in the forenoon, we embarked for Louisville in the Pike
steamboat, which, carrying the mails, was a packet of a much better class than
that in which we had come from Pittsburg. As this passage does not occupy more
than twelve or thirteen hours, we arranged to go ashore that night: not
coveting the distinction of sleeping in a state-room, when it was possible to
sleep anywhere else.
There chanced to be on
board this boat, in addition to the usual dreary crowd of passengers, one
Pitchlynn, a chief of the Choctaw tribe of Indians, who sent in his card to me,
and with whom I had the pleasure of a long conversation.
He spoke English
perfectly well, though he had not begun to learn the language, he told me,
until he was a young man grown. He had read many books; and Scott's poetry
appeared to have left a strong impression on his mind: especially the opening
of The Lady of the Lake, and the great battle scene in Marmion, in which, no doubt
from the congeniality of the subjects to his own pursuits and tastes, he had
great interest and delight. He appeared to understand correctly all he had
read; and whatever fiction had enlisted his sympathy in its belief, had done so
keenly and earnestly. I might almost say fiercely. He was dressed in our
ordinary every-day costume, which hung about his fine figure loosely, and with
indifferent grace. On my telling him that I regretted not to see him in his own
attire, he threw up his right arm for a moment, as though he were brandishing
some heavy weapon, and answered as he let it fall again, that his race were
losing many things besides their dress, and would soon be seen upon the earth
no more: but he wore it at home, he added proudly.
He told me that he had
been away from his home, west of the Mississippi, seventeen months: and was now
returning. He had been chiefly at Washington on some negotiations pending
between his Tribe and the Government: which were not settled yet (he said in a
melancholy way), and he feared never would be: for what could a few poor
Indians do against such well-skilled men of business as the whites? He had no
love for Washington; tired of towns and cities very soon; and longed for the
Forest and the Prairie.
I asked him what he
thought of Congress? He answered, with a smile, that it wanted dignity in an
Indian's eyes.
He would very much
like, he said, to see England before he died; and spoke with much interest
about the great things to be seen there. When I told him of that chamber in the
British Museum wherein are preserved household memorials of a race that ceased
to be, thousands of years ago, he was very attentive, and it was not hard to
see that he had a reference in his mind to the gradual fading away of his own
people.
This led us to speak of
Mr. Catlin's gallery, which he praised highly: observing that his own portrait
was among the collection, and that all the likenesses were "elegant."
Mr. Cooper, he said, had painted the Red Man well; and so would I, he knew, if I
would go home with him and hunt buffaloes, which he was quite anxious I should
do. When I told him that, supposing I went, I should not be very likely to
damage the buffaloes much, he took it as a great joke and laughed heartily.
He was a remarkably handsome
man; some years past forty I should judge; with long black hair, an aquiline
nose, broad cheek bones, a sunburnt complexion, and a very bright, keen, dark,
and piercing eye. There were but twenty thousand of the Choctaws left, he said,
and their number was decreasing every day. A few of his brother chiefs had been
obliged to become civilised, and to make themselves acquainted with what the
whites knew, for it was their only chance of existence. But they were not many;
and the rest were as they always had been. He dwelt on this: and said several
times that unless they tried to assimilate themselves to their conquerors, they
must be swept away before the strides of civilised society.
When we shook hands at
parting, I told him he must come to England, as he longed to see the land so
much: that I should hope to see him there one day: and that I could promise him
he would be well received and kindly treated. He was evidently pleased by this
assurance, though he rejoined, with a good-humoured smile and an arch shake of
his head, that the English used to be very fond of the Red Men when they wanted
their help, but had not cared much for them since.
He took his leave; as
stately and complete a gentleman of Nature's making as ever I beheld; and moved
among the people in the boat, another kind of being. He sent me a lithographed
portrait of himself soon afterwards; very like, though scarcely handsome
enough; which I have carefully preserved in memory of our brief acquaintance.
There was nothing very
interesting in the scenery of this day's journey, which brought us at midnight
to Louisville. We slept at the Galt House; a splendid hotel; and were as
handsomely lodged as though we had been in Paris, rather than hundreds of miles
beyond the Alleghanies.
The city presenting no
objects of sufficient interest to detain us on our way, we resolved to proceed
next day by another steamboat, the Fulton, and to join it, about noon, at a
suburb called Portland, where it would be delayed some time in passing through
a canal.
The interval, after
breakfast, we devoted to riding through the town, which is regular and
cheerful: the streets being laid out at right angles, and planted with young
trees. The buildings are smoky and blackened, from the use of bituminous coal,
but an Englishman is well used to that appearance, and indisposed to quarrel
with it. There did not appear to be much business stirring; and some unfinished
buildings and improvements seemed to intimate that the city had been over-built
in the ardour of "going ahead," and was suffering under the reaction
consequent upon such feverish forcing of its powers.
On our way to Portland
we passed a "Magistrate's Office," which amused me, as looking far
more like a dame school than any police establishment: for this awful
Institution was nothing but a little, lazy, good-for-nothing front parlour,
open to the street; wherein two or three figures (I presume the magistrate and
his myrmidons) were basking in the sunshine, the very effigies of languor and
repose. It was as a perfect picture of justice retired from business for want
of customers; her sword and scales sold off; napping comfortably with her legs
upon the table.
Here, as elsewhere in
these parts, the road was perfectly alive with pigs of all ages; lying about in
every direction, fast asleep; or grunting along in quest of hidden dainties. I
had always a sneaking kindness for these odd animals, and found a constant
source of amusement, when all others failed, in watching their proceedings. As
we were riding along this morning, I observed a little incident between two
youthful pigs, which was so very human as to be inexpressibly comical and
grotesque at the time, though, I dare say, in telling, it is tame enough.
One young gentleman (a
very delicate porker with several straws sticking about his nose, betokening
recent investigations in a dunghill), was walking deliberately on, profoundly
thinking, when suddenly his brother, who was lying in a miry hole unseen by
him, rose up immediately before his startled eyes, ghostly with damp mud. Never
was pig's whole mass of blood so turned. He started back at least three feet,
gazed for a moment and then shot off as hard as he could go: his excessively
little tail vibrating with speed and terror like a distracted pendulum. But,
before he had gone very far, he began to reason with himself as to the nature
of this frightful appearance; and as he reasoned, he relaxed his speed by
gradual degrees; until at last he stopped, and faced about. There was his
brother, with the mud upon him glazing in the sun, yet staring out of the very
same hole, perfectly amazed at his proceedings! He was no sooner assured of
this; and he assured himself so carefully that one may almost say he shaded his
eyes with his hand to see the better; than he came back at a round trot,
pounced upon him, and summarily took off a piece of his tail; as a caution to
him to be careful what he was about for the future, and never to play tricks
with his family any more.
We found the steamboat
in the canal, waiting for the slow process of getting through the lock, and
went on board, where we shortly afterwards had a new kind of visitor in the
person of a certain Kentucky Giant whose name is Porter, and who is of the
moderate height of seven feet eight inches in his stockings.
There never was a race
of people who so completely gave the lie to history as these giants, or whom
all the chroniclers have so cruelly libelled. Instead of roaring and ravaging
about the world, constantly catering for their cannibal larders, and
perpetually going to market in an unlawful manner, they are the meekest people
in any man's acquaintance: rather inclining to milk and vegetable diet, and
bearing anything for a quiet life. So decidedly are amiability and mildness
their characteristics, that I confess I look upon that youth who distinguished
himself by the slaughter of these inoffensive persons as a false-hearted
brigand, who, pretending to philanthropic motives, was secretly influenced only
by the wealth stored up within their castles, and the hope of plunder. And I
lean the more to this opinion from finding that even the historian of those
exploits, with all his partiality for his hero, is fain to admit that the
slaughtered monsters in question were of a very innocent and simple turn; extremely
guileless and ready of belief; lending a credulous ear to the most improbable
tales; suffering themselves to be easily entrapped into pits; and even (as in
the case of the Welsh Giant), with an excess of the hospitable politeness of a
landlord, ripping themselves open, rather than hint at the possibility of their
guests being versed in the vagabond arts of sleight-of-hand and hocus-pocus.
The Kentucky Giant was
but another illustration of the truth of this position. He had a weakness in
the region of the knees, and a trustfulness in his long face, which appealed
even to five-feet-nine for encouragement and support. He was only twenty-five
years old, he said, and had grown recently, for it had been found necessary to
make an addition to the legs of his inexpressibles. At fifteen he was a short
boy, and in those days his English father and his Irish mother had rather
snubbed him, as being too small of stature to sustain the credit of the family.
He added that his health had not been good, though it was better now; but short
people are not wanting who whisper that he drinks too hard.
I understand he drives
a hackney coach, though how he does it, unless he stands on the foot-board
behind, and lies along the roof upon his chest, with his chin in the box, it
would be difficult to comprehend. He brought his gun with him, as a curiosity.
Christened "The Little Rifle," and displayed outside a shop-window,
it would make the fortune of any retail business in Holborn. When he had shown
himself and talked a little while, he withdrew with his pocket instrument, and
went bobbing down the cabin, among men of six feet high and upwards, like a
lighthouse walking among lamp-posts.
Within a few minutes
afterwards we were out of the canal, and in the Ohio River again.
The arrangements of the
boat were like those of the Messenger, and the passengers were of the same
order of people. We fed at the same times, on the same kind of viands, in the
same dull manner, and with the same observances. The company appeared to be
oppressed by the same tremendous concealments, and had as little capacity of
enjoyment or light-heartedness. I never in my life did see such listless, heavy
dulness as brooded over these meals: the very recollection of it weighs me
down, and makes me, for the moment, wretched. Reading and writing on my knee,
in our little cabin, I really dreaded the coming of the hour that summoned us
to table; and was as glad to escape from it again as if it had been a penance
or a punishment. Healthy cheerfulness and good spirits forming a part of the
banquet, I could soak my crusts in the fountain with Le Sage's strolling
player, and revel in their glad enjoyment: but sitting down with so many
fellow-animals to ward off thirst and hunger as a business; to empty each
creature his Yahoo's trough as quickly as he can, and then slink sullenly away;
to have these social sacraments stripped of everything but the mere greedy
satisfaction of the natural cravings; goes so against the grain with me, that I
seriously believe the recollection of these funeral feasts will be a waking
nightmare to me all my life.
There was some relief
in this boat, too, which there had not been in the other, for the captain (a
blunt, good-natured fellow) had his handsome wife with him, who was disposed to
be lively and agreeable, as were a few other lady passengers who had their
seats about us at the same end of the table. But nothing could have made head
against the depressing influence of the general body. There was a magnetism of
dulness in them which would have beaten down the most facetious companion that
the earth ever knew. A jest would have been a crime, and a smile would have
faded into a grinning horror. Such deadly leaden people; such systematic,
plodding, weary, insupportable heaviness; such a mass of animated indigestion
in respect of all that was genial, jovial, frank, social, or hearty; never,
sure, was brought together elsewhere since the world began.
Nor was the scenery, as
we approached the junction of the Ohio and Mississippi Rivers, at all
inspiriting in its influence. The trees were stunted in their growth; the banks
were low and flat; the settlements and log-cabins fewer in number: their
inhabitants more wan and wretched than any we had encountered yet. No songs of
birds were in the air, no pleasant scents, no moving lights and shadows from
swift-passing clouds. Hour after hour, the changeless glare of the hot,
unwinking sky shone upon the same monotonous objects. Hour after hour, the
river rolled along as wearily and slowly as the time itself.
At length, upon the
morning of the third day, we arrived at a spot so much more desolate than any
we had yet beheld, that the forlornest places we had passed were, in comparison
with it, full of interest. At the junction of the two rivers, on ground so flat
and low and marshy, that at certain seasons of the year it is inundated to the
housetops, lies a breeding-place of fever, ague, and death; vaunted in England
as a mine of Golden Hope, and speculated in, on the faith of monstrous
representations, to many people's ruin. A dismal swamp, on which the half-built
houses rot away: cleared here and there for the space of a few yards; and
teeming, then, with rank, unwholesome vegetation, in whose baleful shade the
wretched wanderers who are tempted hither droop, and die, and lay their bones;
the hateful Mississippi circling and eddying before it, and turning off upon
its southern course, a slimy monster hideous to behold; a hotbed of disease, an
ugly sepulchre, a grave uncheered by any gleam of promise: a place without one
single quality, in earth or air or water, to commend it: such is this dismal
Cairo.
But what words shall
describe the Mississippi, great father of rivers, who (praise be to Heaven!)
has no young children like him? An enormous ditch, sometimes two or three miles
wide, running liquid mud, six miles an hour: its strong and frothy current
choked and obstructed everywhere by huge logs and whole forest trees: now
twining themselves together in great rafts, from the interstices of which a
sedgy, lazy foam works up, to float upon the water's top: now rolling past like
monstrous bodies, their tangled roots showing like matted hair; now glancing
singly by like giant leeches; and now writhing round and round in the vortex of
some small whirlpool like wounded snakes. The banks low, the trees dwarfish,
the marshes swarming with frogs, the wretched cabins few and far apart, their
inmates hollow-cheeked and pale, the weather very hot, mosquitoes penetrating
into every crack and crevice of the boat, mud and slime on everything: nothing
pleasant in its aspect, but the harmless lightning which flickers every night
upon the dark horizon.
For two days we toiled
up this foul stream, striking constantly against the floating timber, or
stopping to avoid those more dangerous obstacles, the snags, or sawyers, which
are the hidden trunks of trees that have their roots below the tide. When the
nights are very dark, the look-out stationed in the head of the boat knows, by
the ripple of the water, if any great impediment be near at hand, and rings a
bell beside him, which is the signal for the engine to be stopped; but always
in the night this bell has work to do, and, after every ring, there comes a blow
which renders it no easy matter to remain in bed.
The decline of day here
was very gorgeous; tinging the firmament deeply with red and gold, up to the
very keystone of the arch above us. As the sun went down behind the bank, the
slightest blades of grass upon it seemed to become as distinctly visible as the
arteries in the skeleton of a leaf, and when, as it slowly sank, the red and
golden bars upon the water grew dimmer, and dimmer yet, as if they were sinking
too; and all the glowing colours of departing day paled, inch by inch, before
the sombre night; the scene became a thousand times more lonesome and more
dreary than before, and all its influences darkened with the sky.
We drank the muddy
water of this river while we were upon it. It is considered wholesome by the
natives, and is something more opaque than gruel. I have seen water like it at
the Filter shops, but nowhere else.
On the fourth night
after leaving Louisville we reached St. Louis, and here I witnessed the
conclusion of an incident, trifling enough in itself, but very pleasant to see,
which had interested me during the whole journey.
There was a little
woman on board, with a little baby; and both little woman and little child were
cheerful, good-looking, bright-eyed, and fair to see. The little woman had been
passing a long time with her sick mother in New York, and had left her home in
St. Louis in that condition in which ladies who truly love their lords desire
to be. The baby was born in her mother's house; and she had not seen her
husband (to whom she was now returning) for twelve months: having left him a
month or two after their marriage.
Well, to be sure there
never was a little woman so full of hope, and tenderness, and love, and anxiety
as this little woman was: and all day long she wondered whether "He"
would be at the wharf; and whether "He" had got her letter; and
whether, if she sent the baby ashore by somebody else, "He" would
know it, meeting it in the street: which, seeing that he had never set eyes
upon it in his life, was not very likely in the abstract, but was probable
enough to the young mother. She was such an artless little creature; and was in
such a sunny, beaming, hopeful state; and let out all this matter, clinging
close about her heart, so freely; that all the other lady passengers entered
into the spirit of it as much as she; and the captain (who heard all about it
from his wife) was wondrous sly, I promise you: inquiring, every time we met at
table, as in forgetfulness, whether she expected anybody to meet her at St.
Louis, and whether she would want to go ashore the night we reached it (but he
supposed she wouldn't), and cutting many other dry jokes of that nature. There
was one little, weazen, dried-apple-faced old woman, who took occasion to doubt
the constancy of husbands in such circumstances of bereavement; and there was
another lady (with a lapdog) old enough to moralise on the lightness of human
affections, and yet not so old that she could help nursing the baby now and
then, or laughing with the rest when the little woman called it by its father's
name, and asked it all manner of fantastic questions concerning him in the joy
of her heart.
It was something of a
blow to the little woman, that when we were within twenty miles of our
destination, it became clearly necessary to put this baby to bed. But she got
over it with the same good-humour; tied a handkerchief round her head; and came
out into the little gallery with the rest. Then, such an oracle as she became
in reference to the localities! and such facetiousness as was displayed by the
married ladies! and such sympathy as was shown by the single ones! and such
peals of laughter as the little woman herself (who would just as soon have
cried) greeted every jest with!
At last there were the
lights of St. Louis, and here was the wharf, and those were the steps: and the
little woman, covering her face with her hands, and laughing (or seeming to
laugh) more than ever, ran into her own cabin, and shut herself up. I have no
doubt that, in the charming inconsistency of such excitement, she stopped her
ears, lest she should hear "Him" asking for her: but I did not see
her do it.
Then, a great crowd of
people rushed on board, though the boat was not yet made fast, but was
wandering about, among the other boats, to find a landing-place: and everybody
looked for the husband: and nobody saw him: when, in the midst of us
all--Heaven knows how she ever got there--there was the little woman clinging
with both arms tight round the neck of a fine, good-looking, sturdy young
fellow! and, in a moment afterwards, there she was again, actually clapping her
little hands for joy, as she dragged him through the small door of her small
cabin, to look at the baby as he lay asleep!
We went to a large
hotel, called the Planter's House: built like an English hospital, with long
passages and bare walls, and sky-lights above the room-doors for the free
circulation of air. There were a great many boarders in it; and as many lights
sparkled and glistened from the windows down into the street below, when we
drove up, as if it had been illuminated on some occasion of rejoicing. It is an
excellent house, and the proprietors have most bountiful notions of providing
the creature comforts. Dining alone with my wife in our own room one day, I
counted fourteen dishes on the table at once.
In the old French
portion of the town the thoroughfares are narrow and crooked, and some of the
houses are very quaint and picturesque: being built of wood, with tumble-down
galleries before the windows, approachable by stairs, or rather ladders, from
the street. There are queer little barbers' shops, and drinking-houses too, in
this quarter; and abundance of crazy old tenements with blinking casements,
such as may be seen in Flanders. Some of these ancient habitations, with high
garret gable windows perking into the roofs, have a kind of French shrug about
them; and, being lop-sided with age, appear to hold their heads askew besides,
as if they were grimacing in astonishment at the American Improvements.
It its hardly necessary
to say that these consist of wharfs and warehouses, and new buildings in all
directions; and of a great many vast plans which are still
"progressing." Already, however, some very good houses, broad
streets, and marble-fronted shops have gone so far ahead as to be in a state of
completion; and the town bids fair, in a few years, to improve considerably:
though it is not likely ever to vie, in point of elegance or beauty, with
Cincinnati.
The Roman Catholic
religion, introduced here by the early French settlers, prevails extensively.
Among the public institutions are a Jesuit College; a convent for "the
Ladies of the Sacred Heart;" and a large chapel attached to the college,
which was in course of erection at the time of my visit, and was intended to be
consecrated on the second of December in the next year. The architect of this
building is one of the reverend fathers of the school, and the works proceed
under his sole direction. The organ will be sent from Belgium.
In addition to these
establishments, there is a Roman Catholic cathedral, dedicated to St. Francis
Xavier; and a hospital, founded by the munificence of a deceased resident, who
was a member of that church. It also sends missionaries from hence among the
Indian tribes.
The Unitarian church is
represented, in this remote place, as in most other parts of America, by a
gentleman of great worth and excellence. The poor have good reason to remember
and bless it; for it befriends them, and aids the cause of rational education,
without any sectarian or selfish views. It is liberal in all its actions; of
kind construction; and of wide benevolence.
There are three
free-schools already erected and in full operation in this city. A fourth is
building, and will soon be opened.
No man ever admits the
unhealthiness of the place he dwells in (unless he is going away from it), and
I shall therefore, I have no doubt, be at issue with the inhabitants of St.
Louis in questioning the perfect salubrity of its climate, and in hinting that
I think it must rather dispose to fever in the summer and autumnal seasons.
Just adding, that it is very hot, lies among great rivers, and has vast tracts
of undrained swampy land around it, I leave the reader to form his own opinion.
As I had a great desire
to see a prairie before turning back from the furthest point of my wanderings;
and as some gentlemen of the town had, in their hospitable consideration, an
equal desire to gratify me; a day was fixed, before my departure, for an
expedition to the Looking-Glass Prairie, which is within thirty miles of the
town. Deeming it possible that my readers may not object to know what kind of
thing such a gipsy party may be at that distance from home, and among what sort
of objects it moves, I will describe the jaunt in another chapter.
I MAY premise that the
word Prairie is variously pronounced paraaer, parearer, and paroarer. The
latter mode of pronunciation is, perhaps, the most in favour.
We were fourteen in
all, and all young men: indeed, it is a singular though very natural feature in
the society of these distant settlements, that it is mainly composed of
adventurous persons in the prime of life, and has very few grey heads among it.
There were no ladies: the trip being a fatiguing one: and we were to start at
five o'clock in the morning punctually.
I was called at four,
that I might be certain of keeping nobody waiting; and having got some
bread-and-milk for breakfast, threw up the window and looked down into the
street, expecting to see the whole party busily astir, and great preparations
going on below. But, as everything was very quiet, and the street presented
that hopeless aspect with which five o'clock in the morning is familiar elsewhere,
I deemed it as well to go to bed again, and went accordingly.
I awoke again at seven
o'clock, and by that time the party had assembled, and were gathered round, one
light carriage, with a very stout axletree; one something on wheels like an
amateur carrier's cart; one double phaeton of great antiquity and unearthly construction;
one gig with a great hole in its back, and a broken head; and one rider on
horseback, who was to go on before. I got into the first coach with three
companions; the rest bestowed themselves in the other vehicles; two large
baskets were made fast to the lightest; two large stone jars in wicker cases,
technically known as demi-johns, were consigned to the "least rowdy"
of the party for safe keeping; and the procession moved off to the ferry-boat,
in which it was to cross the river bodily, men, horses, carriages, and all, as
the manner in these parts is.
We got over the river
in due course, and mustered again before a little wooden box on wheels, hove
down all aslant in a morass, with "MERCHANT TAILOR" painted in very
large letters over the door. Having settled the order of proceeding and the
road to be taken, we started off once more, and began to make our way through
an ill-favoured Black Hollow, called, less expressively, the American Bottom.
The previous day had
been--not to say hot, for the term is weak and lukewarm in its power of
conveying an idea of the temperature. The town had been on fire; in a blaze.
But at night it had come on to rain in torrents, and all night long it had
rained without cessation. We had a pair of very strong horses, but travelled at
the rate of little more than a couple of miles an hour, through one unbroken
slough of black mud and water. It had no variety but in depth. Now it was only
half over the wheels, now it hid the axletree, and now the coach sank down in it
almost to the windows. The air resounded in all directions with the loud
chirping of the frogs, who, with the pigs (a coarse, ugly breed, as
unwholesome-looking as though they were the spontaneous growth of the country),
had the whole scene to themselves. Here and there we passed a log-hut; but the
wretched cabins were wide apart and thinly scattered, for though the soil is
very rich in this place, few people can exist in such a deadly atmosphere. On
either side of the track, if it deserve the name, was the thick
"bush;" and everywhere was stagnant, slimy, rotten, filthy water.
As it is the custom in
these parts to give a horse a gallon or so of cold water whenever he is in a
foam with heat, we halted for that purpose at a log-inn in the wood, far
removed from any other residence. It consisted of one room, bare-roofed and
bare-walled of course, with a loft above. The ministering priest was a swarthy
young savage, in a shirt of cotton print like bed-furniture, and a pair of
ragged trousers. There were a couple of young boys, too, nearly naked, lying
idly by the well; and they, and he, and the traveller at the inn, turned out to
look at us.
The traveller was an
old man, with a grey, grisly beard two inches long, a shaggy moustache of the
same hue, and enormous eyebrows; which almost obscured his lazy, semi-drunken
glance, as he stood regarding us with folded arms: poising himself alternately
upon his toes and heels. On being addressed by one of the party, he drew
nearer, and said, rubbing his chin (which scraped under his horny hand like
fresh gravel beneath a nailed shoe), that he was from Delaware, and had lately
bought a farm "down there," pointing into one of the marshes where
the stunted trees were thickest. He was "going," he added, to St.
Louis, to fetch his family, whom he had left behind; but he seemed in no great
hurry to bring on these encumbrances, for when we moved away, he loitered back
into the cabin, and was plainly bent on stopping there so long as his money
lasted. He was a great politician, of course, and explained his opinions at
some length to one of our company; but I only remember that he concluded with
two sentiments, one of which was, Somebody for ever; and the other, Blast
everybody else! which is by no means a bad abstract of the general creed in
these matters.
When the horses were
swollen out to about twice their natural dimensions (there seems to be an idea
here that this kind of inflation improves their going), we went forward again,
through mud and mire, and damp, and festering heat, and brake and bush,
attended always by the music of the frogs and pigs, until nearly noon, when we
halted at a place called Belleville.
Belleville was a small
collection of wooden houses, huddled together in the very heart of the bush and
swamp. Many of them had singularly bright doors of red and yellow; for the
place had been lately visited by a travelling painter, "who got
along," as I was told, "by eating his way." The Criminal Court
was sitting, and was at that moment trying some criminals for horse-stealing:
with whom it would most likely go hard: for live-stock of all kinds, being
necessarily very much exposed in the woods, is held by the community in rather
higher value than human life; and, for this reason, juries generally make a
point of finding all men indicted for cattle-stealing guilty, whether or no.
The horses belonging to
the bar, the judge, and witnesses were tied to temporary racks set up roughly
in the road; by which is to be understood a forest path, nearly knee deep in
mud and slime.
There was an hotel in
this place, which, like all hotels in America, had its large dining-room for
the public table. It was an odd, shambling, low-roofed outhouse, half cow-shed
and half kitchen, with a coarse brown canvas table-cloth, and tin sconces stuck
against the walls, to hold candles at supper-time. The horseman had gone
forward to have coffee and some eatables prepared, and they were by this time
nearly ready. He had ordered "wheat bread and chicken fixings," in
preference to "corn bread and common doings." The latter kind of
refection includes only pork and bacon. The former comprehends broiled ham,
sausages, veal cutlets, steaks, and such other viands of that nature as may be
supposed, by a tolerably wide poetical construction, "to fix" a chicken
comfortably in the digestive organs of any lady or gentleman.
On one of the
door-posts at this inn was a tin plate, whereon was inscribed, in characters of
gold, "Doctor Crocus;" and on a sheet of paper, pasted up by the side
of this plate, was a written announcement that Doctor Crocus would that evening
deliver a lecture on Phrenology for the benefit of the Belleville public; at a
charge for admission of so much a head.
Straying up-stairs
during the preparation of the chicken fixings, I happened to pass the Doctor's
chamber; and as the door stood wide open, and the room was empty, I made bold
to peep in.
It was a bare,
unfurnished, comfortless room, with an unframed portrait hanging up at the head
of the bed; a likeness, I take it, of the Doctor, for the forehead was fully
displayed, and great stress was laid by the artist upon its phrenological
developments. The bed itself was covered with an old patchwork counterpane. The
room was destitute of carpet or of curtain. There was a damp fire-place without
any stove, full of wood ashes; a chair, and a very small table; and on the
last-named piece of furniture was displayed, in grand array, the Doctor's
library, consisting of some half-dozen greasy old books.
Now, it certainly
looked about the last apartment on the whole earth out of which any man would
be likely to get anything to do him good. But the door, as I have said, stood
coaxingly open, and plainly said, in conjunction with the chair, the portrait,
the table, and the book, "Walk in, gentlemen, walk in! Don't be ill,
gentlemen, when you may be well in no time. Doctor Crocus is here, gentlemen,
the celebrated Doctor Crocus! Doctor Crocus has come all this way to cure you,
gentlemen. If you haven't heard of Doctor Crocus, it's your fault, gentlemen,
who live a little way out of the world here: not Doctor Crocus's. Walk in,
gentlemen, walk in!"
In the passage below,
when I went down-stairs again, was Doctor Crocus himself. A crowd had flocked
in from the Court House, and a voice from among them called out to the
landlord,
"Colonel!
introduce Doctor Crocus."
"Mr.
Dickens," says the colonel, "Doctor Crocus."
Upon which Doctor
Crocus, who is a tall, fine-looking Scotchman, but rather fierce and warlike in
appearance for a professor of the peaceful art of healing, bursts out of the
concourse with his right arm extended, and his chest thrown out as far as it
will possibly come, and says:
"Your countryman,
sir!"
Whereupon Doctor Crocus
and I shake hands; and Doctor Crocus looks as if I didn't by any means realise
his expectations, which, in a linen blouse, and a great straw hat with a green
ribbon, and no gloves, and my face and nose profusely ornamented with the
stings of mosquitoes and the bites of bugs, it is very likely I did not.
"Long in these
parts, sir?" says I.
"Three or four
months, sir," says the Doctor.
"Do you think of
soon returning to the old country, sir?" says I.
Doctor Crocus makes no
verbal answer, but gives me an imploring look, which says so plainly,
"Will you ask me that again a little louder, if you please?" that I
repeat the question.
"Think of soon
returning to the old country, sir?" repeats the Doctor.
"To the old
country, sir," I rejoin.
Doctor Crocus looks
round upon the crowd to observe the effect he produces, rubs his hands, and
says, in a very loud voice:
"Not yet awhile,
sir, not yet. You won't catch me at that just yet, sir. I am a little too fond
of freedom for that, sir. Ha, ha! It's not so easy for a man to tear himself
from a free country such as this is, sir. Ha, ha! No, no! Ha, ha! None of that
till one's obliged to do it, sir. No, no!"
As Doctor Crocus says
these latter words, he shakes his head knowingly, and laughs again. Many of the
bystanders shake their heads in concert with the Doctor, and laugh too, and
look at each other as much as to say, "A pretty bright and first-rate sort
of chap is Crocus!" and, unless I am very much mistaken, a good many
people went to the lecture that night who never thought about phrenology, or
about Doctor Crocus either, in all their lives before.
From Belleville we went
on, through the same desolate kind of waste, and constantly attended, without
the interval of a moment, by the same music; until, at three o'clock in the
afternoon, we halted once more at a village called Lebanon to inflate the
horses again, and give them some corn besides: of which they stood much in
need. Pending this ceremony, I walked into the village, where I met a
full-sized dwelling-house coming downhill at a round trot, drawn by a score or
more of oxen.
The public-house was so
very clean and good a one, that the managers of the jaunt resolved to return to
it, and put up there for the night, if possible. This course decided on, and
the horses being well refreshed, we again pushed forward, and came upon the
Prairie at sunset.
It would be difficult
to say why, or how--though it was possibly from having heard and read so much
about it--but the effect on me was disappointment. Looking towards the setting
sun, there lay, stretched out before my view, a vast expanse of level ground;
unbroken, save by one thin line of trees, which scarcely amounted to a scratch
upon the great blank; until it met the glowing sky, wherein it seemed to dip:
mingling with its rich colours, and mellowing in its distant blue. There it lay,
a tranquil sea or lake without water, if such a simile be admissible, with the
day going down upon it: a few birds wheeling here and there: and solitude and
silence reigning paramount around. But the grass was not yet high; there were
bare black patches on the ground; and the few wild flowers that the eye could
see were poor and scanty. Great as the picture was, its very flatness and
extent, which left nothing to the imagination, tamed it down and cramped its
interest. I felt little of that sense of freedom and exhilaration which a
Scottish heath inspires, or even our English downs awaken. It was lonely and
wild, but oppressive in its barren monotony. I felt that, in traversing the
Prairies, I could never abandon myself to the scene, forgetful of all else; as
I should do instinctively, were the heather underneath my feet, or an
iron-bound coast beyond; but should often glance towards the distant and
frequently receding line of the horizon, and wish it gained and passed. It is
not a scene to be forgotten, but it is scarcely one, I think (at all events, as
I saw it), to remember with much pleasure, or to covet the looking on again in
after life.
We encamped near a
solitary log-house, for the sake of its water and dined upon the plain. The
baskets contained roast fowls, buffalo's tongue (an exquisite dainty, by the
way), ham, bread, cheese, and butter; biscuits, champagne, sherry; lemon and
sugar for punch; and abundance of rough ice. The meal was delicious, and the
entertainers were the soul of kindness and good-humour. I have often recalled
that cheerful party to my pleasant recollection since, and shall not easily
forget, in junketings nearer home with friends of older date, my boon
companions on the Prairie.
Returning to Lebanon
that night, we lay at the little inn at which we had halted in the afternoon.
In point of cleanliness and comfort it would have suffered by no comparison
with any village alehouse of a homely kind in England.
Rising at five o'clock
next morning, I took a walk about the village: none of the houses were
strolling about to-day, but it was early for them yet, perhaps: and then amused
myself by lounging in a kind of farmyard behind the tavern, of which the
leading features were, a strange jumble of rough sheds for stables; a rude colonnade,
built as a cool place of summer resort; a deep well; a great earthen mound for
keeping vegetables in, in winter-time; and a pigeon-house, whose little
apertures looked, as they do in all pigeon-houses, very much too small for the
admission of the plump and swelling-breasted birds who were strutting about it,
though they tried to get in never so hard. That interest exhausted, I took a
survey of the inn's two parlours, which were decorated with coloured prints of
Washington and President Madison, and of a white-faced young lady (much
speckled by the flies), who held up her gold neck-chain for the admiration of
the spectator, and informed all admiring comers that she was "Just
Seventeen:" although I should have thought her older. In the best room
were two oil portraits of the kit-cat size, representing the landlord and his
infant son; both looking as bold as lions, and staring out of the canvas with
an intensity that would have been cheap at any price. They were painted, I
think, by the artist who had touched up the Belleville doors with red and gold;
for I seemed to recognise his style immediately.
After breakfast we
started to return by a different way from that which we had taken yesterday,
and coming up at ten o'clock with an encampment of German emigrants carrying
their goods in carts, who had made a rousing fire which they were just
quitting, stopped there to refresh. And very pleasant the fire was; for, hot
though it had been yesterday, it was quite cold to-day, and the wind blew
keenly. Looming in the distance, as we rode along, was another of the ancient
Indian burial-places, called the Monks' Mound; in memory of a body of fanatics
of the order of La Trappe, who founded a desolate convent there many years ago,
when there were no settlers within a thousand miles, and were all swept off by
the pernicious climate: in which lamentable fatality few rational people will
suppose, perhaps, that society experienced any very severe deprivation.
The track of to-day had
the same features as the track of yesterday. There was the swamp, the bush, the
perpetual chorus of frogs, the rank unseemly growth, the unwholesome steaming
earth. Here and there, and frequently too, we encountered a solitary
broken-down waggon, full of some new settler's goods. It was a pitiful sight to
see one of these vehicles deep in the mire; the axletree broken; the wheel
lying idly by its side; the man gone miles away, to look for assistance; the
woman seated among their wandering household gods, with a baby at her breast, a
picture of forlorn, dejected patience; the team of oxen crouching down
mournfully in the mud, and breathing forth such clouds of vapour from their
mouths and nostrils, that all the damp mist and fog around seemed to have come
direct from them.
In due time we mustered
once again before the merchant tailor's, and, having done so, crossed over to
the city in the ferry-boat: passing, on the way, a spot called Bloody Island,
the duelling-ground of St. Louis, and so designated in honour of the last fatal
combat fought there, which was with pistols, breast to breast. Both combatants
fell dead upon the ground; and possibly some rational people may think of them,
as of the gloomy madmen on the Monks' Mound, that they were no great loss to
the community.
AS I had a desire to
travel through the interior of the State of Ohio, and to "strike the
lakes," as the phrase is, at a small town called Sandusky, to which that
route would conduct us on our way to Niagara, we had to return from St. Louis
by the way we had come, and to retrace our former track as far as Cincinnati.
The day on which we
were to take leave of St. Louis being very fine; and the steamboat, which was
to have started I don't know how early in the morning, postponing, for the
third or fourth time, her departure until the afternoon; we rode forward to an
old French village on the river, called properly Carondelet, and nicknamed Vide
Poche, and arranged that the packet should call for us there.
The place consisted of
a few pool cottages and two or three public-houses; the state of whose larders
certainly seemed to justify the second designation of the village, for there
was nothing to eat in any of them. At length, however, by going back some half
a mile or so, we found a solitary house where ham and coffee were procurable;
and there we tarried to await the advent of the boat, which would come in sight
from the green before the door, a long way off.
It was a neat,
unpretending village tavern, and we took our repast in a quaint little room
with a bed in it, decorated with some old oil-paintings, which in their time
had probably done duty in a Catholic chapel or monastery. The fare was very
good, and served with great cleanliness. The house was kept by a characteristic
old couple, with whom we had a long talk, and who were perhaps a very good
sample of that kind of people in the West.
The landlord was a dry,
tough, hard-faced old fellow (not so very old either, for he was but just
turned sixty, I should think), who had been out with the militia in the last
war with England, and had seen all kinds of service--except a battle; and he
had been very near seeing that, he added: very near. He had all his life been
restless and locomotive, with an irresistible desire for change; and was still
the son of his old self: for, if he had nothing to keep him at home, he said
(slightly jerking his hat and his thumb towards the window of the room in which
the old lady sat, as we stood talking in front of the house) he would clean up
his musket, and be off to Texas to-morrow morning. He was one of the very many
descendants of Cain proper to this continent, who seem destined from their birth
to serve as pioneers in the great human army: who gladly go on from year go
year extending its outposts, and leaving home after home behind them; and die
at last, utterly regardless of their graves being left thousands of miles
behind, by the wandering generation who succeed.
His wife was a
domesticated, kind-hearted old soul, who had come with him "from the queen
city of the world," which, it seemed, was Philadelphia; but had no love
for this Western country, and, indeed, had little reason to bear it any; having
seen her children, one by one, die here of fever, in the full prime and beauty
of their youth. Her heart was sore, she said, to think of them; and to talk on
this theme, even to strangers, in that blighted place, so far from her old
home, eased it somewhat, and became a melancholy pleasure.
The boat appearing
towards evening, we bade adieu to the poor old lady and her vagrant spouse, and
making for the nearest landing-place, were soon on board the Messenger again,
in our old cabin, and steaming down the Mississippi.
If the coming up this
river, slowly making head against the stream, be an irksome journey, the
shooting down it with the turbid current is almost worse; for then the boat,
proceeding at the rate of twelve or fifteen miles an hour, has to force its
passage through a labyrinth of floating logs, which, in the dark, it is often
impossible to see beforehand or avoid. All that night the bell was never silent
for five minutes at a time; and after every ring the vessel reeled again, sometimes
beneath a single blow, sometimes beneath a dozen dealt in quick succession, the
lightest of which seemed more than enough to beat in her frail keel, as though
it had been pie-crust. Looking down upon the filthy river after dark, it seemed
to be alive with monsters, as these black masses rolled upon the surface, or
came starting up again, head first, when the boat, in ploughing her way among a
shoal of such obstructions, drove a few among them, for the moment, under
water. Sometimes the engine stopped during a long interval, and then before her
and behind, and gathering close about her on all sides, were so many of these
ill-favoured obstacles that she was fairly hemmed in; the centre of a floating
island; and was constrained to pause until they parted somewhere, as dark
clouds will do before the wind, and opened by degrees a channel out.
In good time next
morning, however, we came again in sight of the detestable morass called Cairo:
and stopping there to take in wood, lay alongside a barge, whose starting
timbers scarcely held together. It was moored to the bank, and on its side was
painted "Coffee House;" that being, I suppose, the floating paradise
to which the people fly for shelter when they lose their houses for a month or
two beneath the hideous waters of the Mississippi. But, looking southward from
this point, we had the satisfaction of seeing that intolerable river dragging
its slimy length and ugly freight abruptly off towards New Orleans; and,
passing a yellow line which stretched across the current, were again upon the
clear Ohio, never, I trust, to see the Mississippi more, saving in troubled
dreams and nightmares. Leaving it for the company of its sparkling neighbour
was like the transition from pain to ease, or the awakening from a horrible
vision to cheerful realities.
We arrived at
Louisville on the fourth night, and gladly availed ourselves of its excellent
hotel. Next day we went on in the Ben Franklin, a beautiful mail steamboat, and
reached Cincinnati shortly after midnight. Being by this time nearly tired of
sleeping upon shelves, we had remained awake to go ashore straightway; and
groping a passage across the dark decks of other boats, and among labyrinths of
engine machinery and leaking casks of molasses, we reached the streets, knocked
up the porter at the hotel where we had stayed before, and were, to our great
joy, safely housed soon afterwards.
We rested but one day
at Cincinnati, and then resumed our journey to Sandusky. As it comprised two
varieties of stagecoach travelling, which, with those I have already glanced
at, comprehend the main characteristics of this mode of transit in America, I
will take the reader as our fellow-passenger, and pledge myself to perform the
distance with all possible dispatch.
Our place of destination,
in the first instance, is Columbus. It is distant about a hundred and twenty
miles from Cincinnati, but there is a macadamised road (rare blessing!) the
whole way, and the rate of travelling upon it is six miles an hour.
We start at eight
o'clock in the morning, in a great mail-coach, whose huge cheeks are so very
ruddy and plethoric, that it appears to be troubled with a tendency of blood to
the head. Dropsical it certainly is, for it will hold a dozen passengers
inside. But, wonderful to add, it is very clean and bright, being nearly new;
and rattles through the streets of Cincinnati gaily.
Our way lies through a
beautiful country, richly cultivated, and luxuriant in its promise of an
abundant harvest. Sometimes we pass a field where the strong bristling stalks
of Indian corn look like a crop of walking-sticks, and sometimes an enclosure
where the green wheat is springing up among a labyrinth of stumps; the
primitive worm-fence is universal, and an ugly thing it is; but the farms are
neatly kept, and, save for the differences, one might be travelling just now in
Kent.
We often stop to water
at a roadside inn, which is always dull and silent. The coachman dismounts and
fills his bucket, and holds it to the horses' heads. There is scarcely ever any
one to help him; there are seldom any loungers standing round; and never any
stable company with jokes to crack. Sometimes, when we have changed our team,
there is a difficulty in starting again, arising out of the prevalent mode of
breaking a young horse: which is to catch him, harness him against his will,
and put him in a stage-coach without further notice: but we get on somehow or
other, after a great many kicks and a violent struggle; and jog on as before
again.
Occasionally, when we
stop to change, some two or three half-drunken loafers will come loitering out
with their hands in their pockets, or will be seen kicking their heels in
rocking-chairs, or lounging on the window-sill, or sitting on a rail within the
colonnade; they have not often anything to say, though, either to us or to each
other, but sit there idly staring at the coach and horses. The landlord of the
inn is usually among them, and seems, of all the party, to be the least
connected with the business of the house. Indeed, he is, with reference to the
tavern, what the driver is in relation to the coach and passengers: whatever
happens in his sphere of action, he is quite indifferent, and perfectly easy in
his mind.
The frequent change of
coachmen works no change or variety in the coachman's character. He is always
dirty, sullen, and taciturn. If he be capable of smartness of any kind, moral
or physical, he has a faculty of concealing it which is truly marvellous. He
never speaks to you as you sit beside him on the box, and if you speak to him,
he answers (if at all) in monosyllables. He points out nothing on the road, and
seldom looks at anything: being, to all appearance, thoroughly weary of it, and
of existence generally. As to doing the honours of his coach, his business, as
I have said, is with the horses. The coach follows because it is attached to
them and goes on wheels: not because you are in it. Sometimes, towards the end
of a long stage, he suddenly breaks out into a discordant fragment of an
election song, but his face never sings along with him: it is only his voice,
and not often that.
He always chews and
always spits, and never encumbers himself with a pocket-handkerchief. The
consequences to the box passenger, especially when the wind blows towards him,
are not agreeable.
Whenever the coach
stops, and you can hear the voices of the inside passengers; or whenever any
bystander addresses them, or any one among them; or they address each other;
you will hear one phrase repeated over and over and over again to the most
extraordinary extent. It is an ordinary and unpromising phrase enough, being
neither more nor less than "Yes, sir;" but it is adapted to every
variety of circumstance, and fills up every pause in the conversation. Thus:
The time is one o'clock
at noon. The scene, a place where we are to stay to dine on this journey. The
coach drives up to the door of an inn. The day is warm, and there are several
idlers lingering about the tavern, and waiting for the public dinner. Among
them is a stout gentleman in a brown hat, swinging himself to and fro in a
rocking-chair on the pavement.
As the coach stops, a
gentleman in a straw hat looks out of the window.
STRAW HAT (to the stout
gentleman in the rocking-chair). I reckon that's Judge Jefferson, ain't it?
BROWN HAT (still
swinging; speaking very slowly; and without any emotion whatever). Yes, sir.
STRAW HAT. Warm
weather, Judge.
BROWN HAT. Yes, sir.
STRAW HAT. There was a
snap of cold last week.
BROWN HAT. Yes, sir.
STRAW HAT. Yes, sir.
A pause, they look at each
other very seriously.
STRAW HAT. I calculate
you'll have got through that case of the corporation, Judge, by this time, now?
BROWN HAT. Yes, sir.
STRAW HAT. How did the
verdict go, sir?
BROWN HAT. For the
defendant, sir.
STRAW HAT (interrogatively).
Yes, sir?
BROWN HAT
(affirmatively). Yes, sir.
BOTH (musingly, as each
gazes down the street). Yes, sir.
Another pause. They
look at each other again, still more seriously than before.
BROWN HAT. This coach
is rather behind its time to-day, I guess.
STRAW HAT (doubtingly).
Yes, sir.
BROWN HAT (looking at
his watch). Yes, sir; nigh upon two hours.
STRAW HAT (raising his
eyebrows in very great surprise). Yes, sir!
BROWN HAT (decisively,
as he puts up his watch). Yes, sir.
ALL THE OTHER INSIDE
PASSENGERS (among themselves). Yes, sir.
COACHMAN (in a very
surly tone). No, it an't.
STRAW HAT (to the
coachman). Well, I don t know, sir. We were a pretty tall time coming that last
fifteen mile. That's a fact.
The coachman making no
reply, and plainly declining to enter into any controversy on a subject so far
removed from his sympathies and feelings, another passenger says, "Yes,
sir;" and the gentleman in the straw hat, in acknowledgment of his
courtesy, says, "Yes, sir," to him in return. The straw hat then
inquires of the brown hat whether that coach in which he (the straw hat) then
sits is not a new one? To which the brown hat again makes answer, "Yes,
sir."
STRAW HAT. I thought
so. Pretty loud smell of varnish, sir?
BROWN HAT. Yes, sir.
ALL THE OTHER INSIDE
PASSENGERS. Yes, sir.
BROWN HAT (to the
company in general). Yes, sir.
The conversational
powers of the company having been by this time pretty heavily taxed, the straw
hat opens the door and gets out; and all the rest alight also. We dine soon
afterwards with the boarders in the house, and have nothing to drink but tea
and coffee. As they are both very bad, and the water is worse, I ask for
brandy; but it is a Temperance Hotel, and spirits are not to be had for love or
money. This preposterous forcing of unpleasant drinks down the reluctant
throats of travellers is not at all uncommon in America, but I never discovered
that the scruples of such wincing landlords induced them to preserve any
unusually nice balance between the quality of their fare and their scale of
charges: on the contrary, I rather suspected them of diminishing the one and
exalting the other, by way of recompense for the loss of their profit on the
sale of spirituous liquors. After all, perhaps, the plainest course for persons
of such tender consciences, would be, a total abstinence from tavern-keeping.
Dinner over, we get
into another vehicle which is ready at the door (for the coach has been changed
in the interval), and resume our journey; which continues through the same kind
of country until evening, when we come to the town where we are to stop for tea
and supper; and having delivered the mail-bags at the Post Office, ride through
the usual wide street, lined with the usual stores and houses (the drapers
always having hung up at their door, by way of sign, a piece of bright red
cloth), to the hotel where this meal is prepared. There being many boarders
here, we sit down a large party, and a very melancholy one as usual. But there
is a buxom hostess at the head of the table, and opposite, a simple Welsh
schoolmaster with his wife and child; who came here, on a speculation of
greater promise than performance, to teach the classics: and they are
sufficient subjects of interest until the meal is over, and another coach is
ready. In it we go on once more, lighted by a bright moon until midnight; when
we stop to change the coach again, and remain for half an hour or so in a
miserable room, with a blurred lithograph of Washington over the smoky fire-place,
and a mighty jug of cold water on the table: to which refreshment the moody
passengers do so apply themselves that they would seem to be, one and all, keen
patients of Doctor Sangrado. Among them is a very little boy, who chews tobacco
like a very big one; and a droning gentleman, who talks arithmetically and
statistically on all subjects, from poetry downwards; and who always speaks in
the same key, with exactly the same emphasis and with very grave deliberation.
He came outside just now and told me how that the uncle of a certain young lady
who had been spirited away and married by a certain captain lived in these
parts; and how this uncle was so valiant and ferocious that he shouldn't wonder
if he were to follow the said captain to England, "and shoot him down in
the street, wherever he found him;" in the feasibility of which strong
measure I, being for the moment rather prone to contradiction, from feeling
half asleep and very tired, declined to acquiesce: assuring him that if the
uncle did resort to it, or gratified any other little whim of the like nature,
he would find himself one morning prematurely throttled at the Old Bailey; and
that he would do well to make his will before he went, as he would certainly
want it before he had been in Britain very long.
On we go all night, and
by-and-by the day begins to break and presently the first cheerful rays of the
warm sun come slanting on us brightly. It sheds its light upon a miserable
waste of sodden grass, and dull trees, and squalid huts, whose aspect is
forlorn and grievous in the last degree. A very desert in the wood, whose
growth of green is dank and noxious like that upon the top of standing water:
where poisonous fungus grows in the rare footprint on the oozy ground, and
sprouts like witches' coral from the crevices in the cabin wall and floor; it
is a hideous thing to lie upon the very threshold of a city. But it was
purchased years ago, and as the owner cannot be discovered, the State has been
unable to reclaim it. So there it remains, in the midst of cultivation and
improvement, like ground accursed, and made obscene and rank by some great
crime.
We reached Columbus
shortly before seven o'clock, and stayed there, to refresh, that day and night:
having excellent apartments in a very large unfinished hotel called the Neill
House, which were richly fitted with the polished wood of the black walnut, and
opened on a handsome portico and stone verandah, like rooms in some Italian
mansion. The town is clean and pretty, and of course is "going to be"
much larger. It is the seat of the State legislature of Ohio, and lays claim,
in consequence, to some consideration and importance.
There being no
stage-coach next day upon the road we wished to take, I hired "an
extra," at a reasonable charge, to carry us to Tiffin; a small town from
whence there is a railroad to Sandusky. This extra was an ordinary four-horse
stage-coach, such as I have described, changing horses and drivers, as the
stage-coach would, but was exclusively our own for the journey. To insure our
having horses at the proper stations, and being incommoded by no strangers, the
proprietors sent an agent on the box, who was to accompany us the whole way
through; and thus attended, and bearing with us, besides, a hamper full of
savoury cold meats, and fruit, and wine; we started off again, in high spirits,
at half-past six o'clock next morning, very much delighted to be by ourselves,
and disposed to enjoy even the roughest journey.
It was well for us that
we were in this humour, for the road we went over that day was certainly enough
to have shaken tempers that were not resolutely at Set Fair, down to some
inches below Stormy. At one time we were all flung together in a heap at the
bottom of the coach, and at another we were crushing our heads against the
roof. Now one side was down deep in the mire, and we were holding on to the
other. Now the coach was lying on the tails of the two wheelers; and now it was
rearing up in the air, in a frantic state, with all four horses standing on the
top of an insurmountable eminence, looking coolly back at it, as though they
would say, "Unharness us. It can't be done." The drivers on these
roads, who certainly get over the road in a manner which is quite miraculous,
so twist and turn the team about in forcing a passage, corkscrew fashion,
through the bogs and swamps, that it was quite a common circumstance, on
looking out of the window, to see the coachman, with the ends of a pair of
reins in his hands, apparently driving nothing, or playing at horses, and the
leaders staring at one unexpectedly from the back of the coach, as if they had
some idea of getting up behind. A great portion of the way was over what is
called a corduroy road, which is made by throwing trunks of trees into a marsh,
and leaving them to settle there. The very slightest of the jolts with which
the ponderous carriage fell from log to log was enough, it seemed, to have
dislocated all the bones in the human body. It would be impossible to
experience a similar set of sensations in any other circumstances, unless,
perhaps, in attempting to go up to the top of St. Paul's in an omnibus. Never,
never once, that day, was the coach in any position, attitude, or kind of
motion to which we are accustomed in coaches. Never did it make the smallest approach
to one's experience of the proceedings of any sort of vehicle that goes on
wheels.
Still, it was a fine
day, and the temperature was delicious, and though we had left Summer behind us
in the west, and were fast leaving Spring, we were moving towards Niagara and
home. We alighted in a pleasant wood towards the middle of the day, dined on a
fallen tree, and leaving our best fragments with a cottager, and our worst with
the pigs (who swarm in this part of the country like grains of sand on the seashore,
to the great comfort of our commissariat in Canada), we went forward again
gaily.
As night came on, the
track grew narrower and narrower, until at last it so lost itself among the
trees, that the driver seemed to find his way by instinct. We had the comfort
of knowing, least, that there was no danger of his falling asleep, for every
now and then a wheel would strike against an unseen stump with such a jerk,
that he was fain to hold on pretty tight and pretty quick, to keep himself upon
the box. Nor was there any reason to dread the least danger from furious
driving, inasmuch as over that broken ground the horses had enough to do to
walk; as to shying, there was no room for that; and a herd of wild elephants
could not have run away in such a wood, with such a coach at their heels. So we
stumbled along, quite satisfied.
These stumps of trees
are a curious feature in American travelling. The varying illusions they
present to the unaccustomed eye, as it grows dark, are quite astonishing in
their number and reality. Now there is a Grecian urn erected in the centre of a
lonely field; now there is a woman weeping at a tomb; now a very commonplace
old gentleman in a white waistcoat, with a thumb thrust into each armhole of
his coat; now a student poring on a book; now a crouching negro; now a horse, a
dog, a cannon, an armed man; a hunchback throwing off his cloak and stepping
forth into the light. They were often as entertaining to me as so many glasses
in a magic lantern, and never took their shapes at my bidding, but seemed to
force themselves upon me, whether I would or no; and, strange to say, I
sometimes recognised in them counterparts of figures once familiar to me in
pictures attached to childish books, forgotten long ago.
It soon became too
dark, however, even for this amusement, and the trees were so close together
that their dry branches rattled against the coach on either side, and obliged
us all to keep our heads within. It lightened, too, for three whole hours; each
flash being very bright, and blue, and long; and as the vivid streaks came
darting in among the crowded branches, and the thunder rolled gloomily above
the tree-tops, one could scarcely help thinking that there were better
neighbourhoods at such a time than thick woods afforded.
At length, between ten
and eleven o'clock at night, a few feeble lights appeared in the distance, and
Upper Sandusky, an Indian village, where we were to stay till morning, lay
before us.
They were gone to bed
at the log-inn, which was the only house of entertainment in the place, but
soon answered to our knocking, and got some tea for us in a sort of kitchen or
common room, tapestried with old newspapers, pasted against the wall. The
bedchamber to which my wife and I were shown was a large, low, ghostly room;
with a quantity of withered branches on the hearth, and two doors without any
fastening, opposite to each other, both opening on the black night and wild
country, and so contrived that one of them always blew the other open: a
novelty in domestic architecture which I do not remember to have seen before,
and which I was somewhat disconcerted to have forced on my attention after
getting into bed, as I had a considerable sum in gold, for our travelling
expenses, in my dressing-case. Some of the luggage, however, piled against the
panels, soon settled this difficulty, and my sleep would not have been very
much affected that night, I believe, though it had failed to do so.
My Boston friend
climbed up to bed somewhere in the roof, where another guest was already
snoring hugely. But, being bitten beyond his power of endurance, he turned out
again, and fled for shelter to the coach, which was airing itself in front of
the house. This was not a very politic step as it turned out, for the pigs
scenting him, and looking upon the coach as a kind of pie with some manner of
meat inside, grunted round it so hideously, that he was afraid to come out
again, and lay there shivering till morning. Nor was it possible to warm him,
when he did come out, by means of a glass of brandy; for in Indian villages,
the legislature, with a very good and wise intention, forbids the sale of
spirits by tavern-keepers. The precaution, however, is quite inefficacious, for
the Indians never fail to procure liquor of a worse kind, at a dearer price,
from travelling pedlers.
It is a settlement of
the Wyandot Indians who inhabit this place. Among the company at breakfast was
a mild old gentleman, who had been for many years employed by the United States
Government in conducting negotiations with the Indians, and who had just
concluded a treaty with these people by which they bound themselves, in
consideration of a certain annual sum, to remove next year to some land
provided for them west of the Mississippi, and a little way beyond St. Louis.
He gave me a moving account of their strong attachment to the familiar scenes
of their infancy, and in particular to the burial-places of their kindred; and
of their great reluctance to leave them. He had witnessed many such removals,
and always with pain, though he knew that they departed for their own good. The
question whether this tribe should go or stay had been discussed among them a
day or two before, in a hut erected for the purpose, the logs of which still
lay upon the ground before the inn. When the speaking was done, the ayes and
noes were ranged on opposite sides, and every male adult voted in his turn. The
moment the result was known, the minority (a large one) cheerfully yielded to
the rest, and withdrew all kind of opposition.
We met some of these
poor Indians afterwards, riding on shaggy ponies. They were so like the meaner
sort of gipsies, that if I could have seen any of them in England, I should
have concluded, as a matter of course, that they belonged to that wandering and
restless people.
Leaving this town
directly after breakfast, we pushed forward again, over a rather worse road
than yesterday, if possible, and arrived about noon at Tiffin, where we parted
with the extra. At two o'clock we took the railroad; the travelling on which
was very slow, its construction being indifferent, and the ground wet and
marshy; and arrived at Sandusky in time to dine that evening. We put up at a
comfortable little hotel on the brink of Lake Erie, lay there that night, and
had no choice but to wait there next day, until a steamboat bound for Buffalo
appeared. The town, which was sluggish and uninteresting enough, was something
like the back of an English watering-place out of the season.
Our host, who was very
attentive and anxious to make us comfortable, was a handsome middle-aged man,
who had come to this town from New England, in which part of the country he was
"raised." When I say that he constantly walked in and out of the room
with his hat on; and stopped to converse in the same free-and-easy state; and
lay down on our sofa, and pulled his newspaper out of his pocket, and read it
at his ease; I merely mention these traits as characteristic of the country:
not at all as being matter of complaint, or as having been disagreeable to me.
I should undoubtedly be offended by such proceedings at home, because there
they are not the custom, and where they are not, they would be impertinences;
but, in America, the only desire of a good-natured fellow of this kind is to
treat his guests hospitably and well; and I had no more right, and I can truly
say no more disposition, to measure his conduct by our English rule and
standard, than I had to quarrel with him for not being of the exact stature
which would qualify him for admission into the Queen's Grenadier Guards. As
little inclination had I to find fault with a funny old lady who was an upper
domestic in this establishment, and who, when she came to wait upon us at any
meal, sat herself down comfortably in the most convenient chair, and, producing
a large pin to pick her teeth with, remained performing that ceremony, and
steadfastly regarding us meanwhile with much gravity and composure (now and
then pressing us to eat a little more), until it was time to clear away. It was
enough for us that whatever we wished done was done with great civility and
readiness, and a desire to oblige, not only here, but everywhere else; and that
all our wants were, in general, zealously anticipated.
We were taking an early
dinner at this house, on the day after our arrival, which was Sunday, when a
steamboat came in sight, and presently touched at the wharf. As she proved to
be on her way to Buffalo, we hurried on board with all speed, and soon left
Sandusky far behind us.
She was a large vessel
of five hundred tons, and handsomely fitted up, though with high-pressure
engines; which always conveyed that kind of feeling to me which I should be
likely to experience, I think, if I had lodgings on the first floor of a
powder-mill. She was laden with flour, some casks of which commodity were
stored upon the deck. The captain coming up to have a little conversation, and
to introduce a friend, seated himself astride of one of these barrels, like a
Bacchus of private life; and pulling a great clasp-knife out of his pocket,
began to "whittle" it as he talked, by paring thin slices off the
edges. And he whittled with such industry and hearty good-will, that but for
his being called away very soon, it must have disappeared bodily, and left
nothing in its place but grist and shavings.
After calling at one or
two flat places, with low dams stretching out into the lake, whereon were
stumpy lighthouses, like windmills without sails, the whole looking like a
Dutch vignette, we came at midnight to Cleveland, where we lay all night, and
until nine o'clock next morning.
I entertained quite a
curiosity in reference to this place, from having seen at Sandusky a specimen
of its literature in the shape of a newspaper, which was very strong indeed
upon the subject of Lord Ashburton's recent arrival at Washington, to adjust
the points in dispute between the United States Government and Great Britain:
informing its readers that as America had "whipped" England in her
infancy, and whipped her again in her youth, so it was clearly necessary that she
must whip her once again in her maturity: and pledging its credit to all True
Americans, that if Mr. Webster did his duty in the approaching negotiations,
and sent the English Lord home again in double-quick time, they should, within
two years, sing "Yankee Doodle in Hyde Park, and Hail Columbia in the
scarlet courts of Westminster!" I found it a pretty town, and had the
satisfaction of beholding the outside of the office of the journal from which I
have just quoted. I did not enjoy the delight of seeing the wit who indited the
paragraphs in question, but I have no doubt he is a prodigious man in his way,
and held in high repute by a select circle.
There was a gentleman
on board, to whom, as I unintentionally learned through the thin partition
which divided our state-room from the cabin in which he and his wife conversed
together, I was unwittingly the occasion of very great uneasiness. I don't know
why or wherefore, but I appeared to run in his mind perpetually, and to
dissatisfy him very much. First of all I heard him say: and the most ludicrous
part of the business was, that he said it in my very ear, and could not have
communicated more directly with me, if he had leaned upon my shoulder, and
whispered me: "Boz is on board still, my dear." After a considerable
pause he added, complainingly, "Boz keeps himself very close:" which
was true enough, for I was not very well, and was lying down, with a book. I
thought he had done with me after this, but I was deceived; for a long interval
having elapsed, during which I imagine him to have been turning restlessly from
side to side, and trying to go to sleep, he broke out again with, "I
suppose that Boz will be writing a book by-and-by, and putting all our names in
it!" at which imaginary consequence of being on board a boat with Boz, he
groaned, and became silent.
We called at the town
of Erie at eight o'clock that night, and lay there an hour. Between five and
six next morning we arrived at Buffalo, where we breakfasted; and, being too
near the Great Falls to wait patiently anywhere else, we set off by the train,
the same morning at nine o'clock, to Niagara.
It was a miserable day;
chilly and raw; a damp mist falling; and the trees in that northern region
quite bare and wintry. Whenever the train halted, I listened for the roar; and
was constantly straining my eyes in the direction where I knew the Falls must
be, from seeing the river rolling on towards them; every moment expecting to
behold the spray. Within a few minutes of our stopping, not before, I saw two
great white clouds rising up slowly and majestically from the depths of the
earth. That was all. At length we alighted: and then, for the first time, I
heard the mighty rush of water, and felt the ground tremble underneath my feet.
The bank is very steep,
and was slippery with rain and half-melted ice. I hardly know how I got down,
but I was soon at the bottom, and climbing, with two English officers who were
crossing and had joined me, over some broken rocks, deafened by the noise,
half-blinded by the spray, and wet to the skin. We were at the foot of the
American Fall. I could see an immense torrent of water tearing headlong down
from some great height, but had no idea of shape, or situation, or anything but
vague immensity.
When we were seated in
the little ferry-boat, and were crossing the swollen river immediately before
both cataracts, I began to feel what it was: but I was in a manner stunned, and
unable to comprehend the vastness of the scene. It was not until I came on
Table Rock, and looked--Great Heaven, on what a fall of bright green
water!--that it came upon me in its full might and majesty.
Then, when I felt how
near to my Creator I was standing, the first effect, and the enduring
one--instant and lasting--of the tremendous spectacle, was Peace. Peace of
Mind, tranquillity, calm recollections of the Dead, great thoughts of Eternal
Rest and Happiness: nothing of gloom or terror. Niagara was at once stamped
upon my heart, an Image of Beauty; to remain there, changeless and indelible,
until its pulses cease to beat, for ever.
Oh, how the strife and
trouble of daily life receded from my view, and lessened in the distance,
during the ten memorable days we passed on that Enchanted Ground! What voices
spoke from out the thundering water; what faces, faded from the earth, looked
out upon me from its gleaming depths; what Heavenly promise glistened in those
angels' tears, the drops of many hues, that showered around, and twined
themselves about the gorgeous arches which the changing rainbows made!
I never stirred in all
that time from the Canadian side, whither I had gone at first. I never crossed
the river again for I knew there were people on the other shore, and in such a
place it is natural to shun strange company. To wander to and fro all day, and
see the cataracts from all points of view; to stand upon the edge of the Great
Horse-shoe Fall, marking the hurried water gathering strength as it approached
the verge, yet seeming, too, to pause before it shot into the gulf below; to
gaze from the river's level up at the torrent as it came streaming down; to
climb the neighbouring heights and watch it through the trees, and see the
wreathing water in the rapids hurrying on to take its fearful plunge; to linger
in the shadow of the solemn rocks three miles below; watching the river as,
stirred by no visible cause, it heaved and eddied and awoke the echoes, being
troubled yet, far down beneath the surface, by its giant leap; to have Niagara
before me, lighted by the sun and by the moon, red in the day's decline, and
grey as evening slowly fell upon it; to look upon it every day, and wake up in
the night and hear its ceaseless voice: this was enough.
I think in every quiet
season now, still do those waters roll and leap, and roar and tumble, all day
long; still are the rainbows spanning them, a hundred feet below. Still, when
the sun is on them, do they shine and glow like molten gold. Still, when the
day is gloomy, do they fall like snow, or seem to crumble away like the front
of a great chalk cliff, or roll down the rock like dense white smoke. But
always does the mighty stream appear to die as it comes down, and always from
its unfathomable grave arises that tremendous ghost of spray and mist, which is
never laid: which has haunted this place with the same dread solemnity since
Darkness brooded on the deep, and that first flood before the
Deluge--Light--came rushing on Creation at the word of God.
I WISH to abstain from
instituting any comparison, or drawing any parallel whatever, between the
social features of the United States and those of the British possessions in
Canada. For this reason, I shall confine myself to a very brief account of our
journeyings in the latter territory.
But, before I leave
Niagara, I must advert to one disgusting circumstance, which can hardly have
escaped the observation of any decent traveller who has visited the Falls.
On Table Rock there is
a cottage belonging to a Guide, where little relics of the place are sold, and
where visitors register their names in a book kept for the purpose. On the wall
of the room in which a great many of these volumes are preserved, the following
request is posted: "Visitors will please not copy nor extract the remarks
and poetical effusions from the registers and albums kept here."
But for this
intimation, I should have let them lie upon the tables on which they were
strewn with careful negligence, like books in a drawing-room: being quite
satisfied with the stupendous silliness of certain stanzas with an anti-climax
at the end of each, which were framed and hung up on the wall. Curious,
however, after reading this announcement, to see what kind of morsels were so
carefully preserved, I turned a few leaves, and found them scrawled all over
with the vilest and the filthiest ribaldry that ever human hogs delighted in.
It is humiliating
enough to know that there are among men brutes so obscene and worthless, that
they can delight in laying their miserable profanations upon the very steps of
Nature's greatest altar. But that these should be hoarded up for the delight of
their fellow-swine, and kept in a public place where any eyes may see them, is
a disgrace to the English language in which they are written (though I hope few
of these entries have been made by Englishmen), and a reproach to the English
side, on which they are preserved.
The quarters of our
soldiers at Niagara are finely and airily situated. Some of them are large
detached houses on the plain above the Falls, which were originally designed
for hotels; and in the evening-time, when the women and children were leaning
over the balconies watching the men as they played at ball and other games upon
the grass before the door, they often presented a little picture of
cheerfulness and animation which made it quite a pleasure to pass that way.
At any garrisoned point
where the line of demarcation between one country and another is so very narrow
as at Niagara, desertion from the ranks can scarcely fail to be of frequent
occurrence: and it may be reasonably supposed that when the soldiers entertain
the wildest and maddest hopes of the fortune and independence that await them
on the other side, the impulse to play traitor, which such a place suggests to
dishonest minds, is not weakened. But it very rarely happens that the men who
do desert are happy or contented afterwards; and many instances have been known
in which they have confessed their grievous disappointment, and their earnest
desire to return to their old service, if they could but be assured of pardon,
or of lenient treatment. Many of their comrades, not withstanding, do the like
from time to time; and instances of loss of life in the effort to cross the
river with this object are far from being uncommon. Several men were drowned in
the attempt to swim across, not long ago; and one, who had the madness to trust
himself upon a table as a raft, was swept down to the whirlpool, where his
mangled body eddied round and round some days.
I am inclined to think
that the noise of the Falls is very much exaggerated; and this will appear the
more probable when the depth of the great basin in which the water is received
is taken into account. At no time during our stay there was the wind at all
high or boisterous, but we never heard them three miles off, even at the very
quiet time of sunset, though we often tried.
Queenston, at which
place the steamboats start for Toronto (or I should rather say at which place
they call, for their wharf is at Lewiston, on the opposite shore), is situated
in a delicious valley, through which the Niagara River, in colour a very deep
green, pursues its course. It is approached by a road that takes its winding
way among the heights by which the town is sheltered; and, seen from this
point, is extremely beautiful and picturesque. On the most conspicuous of these
heights stood a monument erected by the Provincial Legislature in memory of
General Brock, who was slain in a battle with the American Forces, after having
won the victory. Some vagabond, supposed to be a fellow of the name of Lett,
who is now, or who lately was, in prison as a felon, blew up this monument two
years ago, and it is now a melancholy ruin, with a long fragment of iron
railing hanging dejectedly from its top, and waving to and fro like a wild ivy
branch or broken vine stem. It is of much higher importance than it may seem,
that this statue should be repaired at the public cost, as it ought to have
been long ago. Firstly, because it is beneath the dignity of England to allow a
memorial raised in honour of one of her defenders to remain in this condition,
on the very spot where he died. Secondly, because the sight of it in its
present state, and the recollection of the unpunished outrage which brought it
to this pass, is not very likely to soothe down border feelings among English
subjects here, or compose their border quarrels and dislikes.
I was standing on the
wharf at this place, watching the passengers embarking in a steamboat which
preceded that whose coming we awaited, and participating in the anxiety with
which a sergeant's wife was collecting her few goods together--keeping one
distracted eye hard upon the porters, who wore hurrying them on board, and the
other on a hoopless washing-tub for which, as being the most utterly worthless
of all her movables, she seemed to entertain particular affection--when three
or four soldiers with a recruit came up, and went on board.
The recruit was a
likely young fellow enough, strongly built and well made, but by no means
sober: indeed, he had all the air of a man who had been more or less drunk for
some days. He carried a small bundle over his shoulder, slung at the end of a
walking-stick, and had a short pipe in his mouth. He was as dusty and dirty as
recruits usually are, and his shoes betokened that he had travelled on foot
some distance, but he was in a very jocose state, and shook hands with this
soldier, and clapped that one on the back, and talked and laughed continually,
like a roaring idle dog as he was.
The soldiers rather
laughed at this blade than with him: seeming to say, as they stood straightening
their canes in their hands, and looking coolly at him over their glazed stocks,
"Go on, my boy, while you may! you'll know better by-and-by:" when
suddenly the novice, who had been backing towards the gangway in his noisy
merriment, fell overboard before their eyes, and splashed heavily down into the
river between the vessel and the dock.
I never saw such a good
thing as the change that came over these soldiers in an instant. Almost before
the man was down, their professional manner, their stiffness and constraint,
were gone, and they were filled with the most violent energy. In less time than
is required to tell it, they had him out again, feet first, with the tails of
his coat flapping over his eyes, everything about him hanging the wrong way,
and the water streaming off at every thread in his threadbare dress. But the
moment they set him upright, and found that he was none the worse, they were
soldiers again, looking over their glazed stocks more composedly than ever.
The half-sobered recruit
glanced round for a moment, as if his first impulse were to express some
gratitude for his preservation, but seeing them with this air of total
unconcern, and having his wet pipe presented to him with an oath by the soldier
who had been by far the most anxious of the party, he stuck it in his mouth,
thrust his hands into his moist pockets, and, without even shaking the water
off his clothes, walked on board whistling; not to say as if nothing had
happened, but as if he had meant to do it, and it had been a perfect success.
Our steamboat came up
directly this had left the wharf, and soon bore us to the mouth of the Niagara;
where the stars and stripes of America flutter on one side, and the Union Jack
of England on the other: and so narrow is the space between them that the
sentinels in either fort can often hear the watch-word of the other country
given. Thence we emerged on Lake Ontario, an inland sea; and by half-past six
o'clock were at Toronto.
The country round this
town, being very flat, is bare of scenic interest; but the town itself is full
of life and motion, bustle, business, and improvement. The streets are well
paved, and lighted with gas; the houses are large and good; the shops
excellent. Many of them have a display of goods in their windows, such as may
be seen in thriving county towns in England; and there are some which would do
no discredit to the metropolis itself. There is a good stone prison here; and
there are, besides, a handsome church, a Court-house, public offices, many
commodious private residences, and a Government Observatory for noting and
recording the magnetic variations. In the College of Upper Canada, which is one
of the public establishments of the city, a sound education in every department
of polite learning can be had at a very moderate expense: the annual charge for
the instruction of each pupil not exceeding nine pounds sterling. It has pretty
good endowments in the way of land, and is a valuable and useful institution.
The first stone of a
new college had been laid but a few day before by the Governor General. It will
be a handsome, spacious edifice, approached by a long avenue, which is already
planted and made available as a public walk. The town is well adapted for
wholesome exercise at all seasons, for the footways in the thoroughfares which
lie beyond the principal street are planked like floors, and kept in very good
and clean repair.
It is a matter of deep
regret that political differences should have run high in this place, and led
to most discreditable and disgraceful results. It is not long since guns were
discharged from a window in this town at the successful candidates in an
election, and the coachman of one of them was actually shot in the body, though
not dangerously wounded. But one man was killed on the same occasion; and from
the very window whence he received his death, the very flag which shielded his
murderer (not only in the commission of his crime, but from its consequences),
was displayed again on the occasion of the public ceremony performed by the
Governor General to which I have just adverted. Of all the colours in the
rainbow, there is but one which could be so employed: I need not say that flag
was orange.
The time of leaving
Toronto for Kingston is noon. By eight o'clock next morning the traveller is at
the end of his journey, which is performed by steamboat upon Lake Ontario,
calling at Port Hope and Coburg, the latter a cheerful, thriving little town.
Vast quantities of flour form the chief item in the freight of these vessels.
We had no fewer than one thousand and eighty barrels on board between Coburg
and Kingston.
The latter place, which
is now the seat of government in Canada, is a very poor town, rendered still
poorer in the appearance of its market-place by the ravages of a recent fire.
Indeed, it may be said of Kingston, that one half of it appears to be burnt
down, and the other half not to be built up. The Government House is neither
elegant nor commodious, yet it is almost the only house of any importance in
the neighbourhood.
There is an admirable
gaol here, well and wisely governed, and excellently regulated in every
respect. The men were employed as shoemakers, ropemakers, blacksmiths, tailors,
carpenters, and stone-cutters; and in building a new prison, which was pretty far
advanced towards completion. The female prisoners were occupied in needlework.
Among them was a beautiful girl of twenty, who had been there nearly three
years. She acted as bearer of secret dispatches for the self-styled Patriots on
Navy Island during the Canadian Insurrection: sometimes dressing as a girl, and
carrying them in her stays; sometimes attiring herself as a boy, and secreting
them in the lining of her hat. In the latter character she always rode as a boy
would, which was nothing to her, for she could govern any horse that any man
could ride, and could drive four-in-hand with the best whip in those parts.
Setting forth on one of her patriotic missions, she appropriated to herself the
first horse she could lay her hands on; and this offence had brought her where
I saw her. She had quite a lovely face, though, as the reader may suppose from
this sketch of her history, there was a lurking devil in her bright eye, which
looked out pretty sharply from between her prison bars.
There is a bomb-proof
fort here of great strength, which occupies a bold position, and is capable,
doubtless, of doing good service; though the town is much too close upon the
frontier to be long held, I should imagine, for its present purpose in troubled
times. There is also a small navy-yard, where a couple of Government steamboats
were building, and getting on vigorously.
We left Kingston for
Montreal on the tenth of May, at half-past nine in the morning, and proceeded
in a steamboat down the St. Lawrence River. The beauty of this noble stream at
almost any point, but especially in the commencement of this journey, when it winds
its way among the thousand Islands, can hardly be imagined. The number and
constant successions of these islands, all green and richly wooded; their
fluctuating sizes, some so large that for half an hour together one among them
will appear as the opposite bank of the river, and some so small that they are
mere dimples on its broad bosom; their infinite variety of shapes; and the
numberless combinations of beautiful forms which the trees growing on them
present; all form a picture fraught with uncommon interest and pleasure.
In the afternoon we
shot down some rapids where the river boiled and bubbled strangely, and where
the force and headlong violence of the current were tremendous. At seven
o'clock we reached Dickenson's Landing, whence travellers proceed for two or
three hours by stage-coach: the navigation of the river being rendered so
dangerous and difficult in the interval, by rapids, that steamboats do no make
the passage. The number and length of those portages, over which the roads are
bad, and the travelling slow, render the way between the towns of Montreal and
Kingston somewhat tedious.
Our course lay over a
wide, unenclosed tract of country at a little distance from the river-side,
whence the bright warning lights on the dangerous parts of the St. Lawrence
shone vividly. The night was dark and raw, and the way dreary enough. It was
nearly ten o'clock when we reached the wharf where the next steamboat lay; and
went on board, and to bed.
She lay there all
night, and started as soon as it was day. The morning was ushered in by a
violent thunder-storm, and was very wet, but gradually improved and brightened
up. Going on deck after breakfast, I was amazed to see floating down with the
stream a most gigantic raft, with some thirty or forty wooden houses upon it,
and at least as many flag masts, so that it looked like a nautical street. I
saw many of these rafts afterwards, but never one so large. All the timber, or
"lumber," as it is called in America, which is brought down the St. Lawrence,
is floated down in this manner. When the raft reaches its place of destination,
it is broken up; the materials are sold; and the boatmen return for more.
At eight we landed
again, and travelled by a stage-coach for four hours through a pleasant and
well-cultivated country, perfectly French in every respect: in the appearance
of the cottages; the air, language, and dress of the peasantry, the sign-boards
on the shops and taverns; and the Virgin's shrines and crosses by the wayside.
Nearly every common labourer and boy, though he had no shoes to his feet, wore
round his waist a sash of some bright colour: generally red: and the women, who
were working in the fields and gardens, and doing all kinds of husbandry, wore,
one and all, great flat straw hats with most capacious brims. There were
Catholic Priests and Sisters of Charity in the village streets; and images of
the Saviour at the corners of cross-roads, and in other public places.
At noon we went on
board another steamboat, and reached the village of Lachine, nine miles from
Montreal, by three o'clock. There we left the river, and went on by land.
Montreal is pleasantly
situated on the margin of the St. Lawrence, and is backed by some bold heights,
about which there are charming rides and drives. The streets are generally
narrow and irregular, as in most French towns of any age; but, in the more
modern parts of the city, they are wide and airy. They display a great variety
of very good shops; and both in the town and suburbs there are many excellent
private dwellings. The granite quays are remarkable for their beauty, solidity,
and extent.
There is a very large
Catholic cathedral here, recently erected; with two tall spires, of which one
is yet unfinished. In the open space in front of this edifice stands a
solitary, grim-looking, square brick tower, which has a quaint and remarkable
appearance, and which the wiseacres of the place have consequently determined
to pull down immediately. The Government House is very superior to that at
Kingston, and the town is full of life and bustle. In one of the suburbs is a
plank road--not footpath--five or six miles long, and a famous road it is too.
All the rides in the vicinity were made doubly interesting by the bursting out
of spring, which is here so rapid, that it is but a day's leap from barren
winter to the blooming youth of summer.
The steamboats to
Quebec perform the journey in the night; that is to say, they leave Montreal at
six in the evening, and arrive in Quebec at six next morning. We made this
excursion during our stay in Montreal (which exceeded a fortnight), and were
charmed by its interest and beauty.
The impression made
upon the visitor by this Gibraltar of America: its giddy heights; its citadel
suspended, as it were, in the air; its picturesque steep streets and frowning
gateways and the splendid views which burst upon the eye at every turn: is at
once unique and lasting.
It is a place not to be
forgotten, or mixed up in the mind with other places, or altered for a moment
in the crowd of scenes a traveller can recall. Apart from the realities of this
most picturesque city, there are associations clustering about it which would
make a desert rich in interest. The dangerous precipice along whose rocky front
Wolfe and his brave companions climbed to glory; the Plains of Abraham, where
he received his mortal wound; the fortress so chivalrously defended by
Montcalm; and his soldier's grave, dug for him, while yet alive, by the
bursting of a shell; are not the least among them, or among the gallant incidents
of history. That is a noble Monument, too, and worthy of two great nations,
which perpetuates the memory of both brave generals, and on which their names
are jointly written.
The city is rich in
public institutions and in Catholic churches and charities, but it is mainly in
the prospect from the site of the Old Government House, and from the Citadel,
that its surpassing beauty lies. The exquisite expanse of country, rich in
field and forest, mountain height and water, which lies stretched out before
the view, with miles of Canadian villages, glancing in long white streaks, like
veins along the landscape; the motley crowd of gables, roofs, and chimney-tops
in the old hilly town immediately at hand; the beautiful St. Lawrence sparkling
and flashing in the sun-light; and the tiny ships below the rock from which you
gaze, whose distant rigging looks like spiders' webs against the light, while
casks and barrels on their decks dwindle into toys, and busy mariners become so
many puppets: all this, framed by a sunken window in the fortress, and looked
at from the shadowed room within, forms one of the brightest and most
enchanting pictures that the eye can rest upon.
In the spring of the
year, vast numbers of emigrants, who have newly arrived from England or from
Ireland, pass between Quebec and Montreal, on their way to the back-woods and
new settlements of Canada. If it be an entertaining lounge (as I very often
found it) to take a morning stroll upon the quay at Montreal, and see them
grouped in hundreds on the public wharfs about their chests and boxes, it is
matter of deep interest to be their fellow-passenger on one of these
steamboats, and, mingling with the concourse, see and hear them unobserved.
The vessel in which we
returned from Quebec to Montreal was crowded with them, and at night they
spread their beds between decks (those who had beds, at least), and slept so
close and thick about our cabin door, that the passage to and fro was quite
blocked up. They were nearly all English; from Gloucestershire the greater
part; and had had a long winter passage out; but it was wonderful to see how
clean the children had been kept, and how untiring in their love and
self-denial all the poor parents were.
Cant as we may, and as
we shall to the end of all things, it is very much harder for the poor to be
virtuous than it is for the rich; and the good that is in them shines the
brighter for it. In many a noble mansion lives a man, the best of husbands and
of fathers, whose private worth in both capacities is justly lauded to the
skies. But bring him here, upon this crowded deck. Strip from his fair young
wife her silken dress and jewels, unbind her braided hair, stamp early wrinkles
on her brow, pinch her pale cheek with care and much privation, array her faded
form in coarsely-patched attire, let there be nothing but his love to set her
forth or deck her out, and you shall put it to the proof indeed. So change his
station in the world, that he shall see in those young things who climb about
his knee: not records of his wealth and name: but little wrestlers with him for
his daily bread; so many poachers on his scanty meal; so many units to divide
his every sum of comfort, and farther to reduce its small amount. In lieu of
the endearments of childhood in its sweetest aspect, heap upon him all its
pains and wants, its sicknesses and ills, its fretfulness, caprice, and
querulous endurance: let its prattle be, not of engaging infant fancies, but of
cold, and thirst, and hunger: and if his fatherly affection outlive all this,
and he be patient, watchful, tender; careful of his children's lives, and
mindful always of their joys and sorrows; then send him back to Parliament, and
Pulpit, and to Quarter Sessions, and when he hears fine talk of the depravity
of those who live from hand to mouth, and labour hard to do it, let him speak
up, as one who knows, and tell those holders forth that they, by parallel with
such a class, should be High Angels in their daily lives, and lay but humble
siege to Heaven at last.
Which of us shall say
what he would be, if such realities, with small relief or change all through
his days, were his? Looking round upon these people; far from home, houseless,
indigent, wandering, weary with travel and hard living: and seeing how
patiently they nursed and tended their young children; how they consulted ever
their wants first, then half supplied their own; what gentle ministers of hope
and faith the women were; how the men profited by their example; and how very,
very seldom even a moment's petulance or harsh complaint broke out among them:
I felt a stronger love and honour of my kind come glowing on my heart, and
wished to God there had been many Atheists in the better part of human nature
there, to read this simple lesson in the book of Life.
--------------------------
We left Montreal for
New York again on the thirtieth of May; crossing to La Prairie, on the opposite
shore of the St. Lawrence, in a steamboat; we then took the railroad to St.
John's, which is on the brink of Lake Champlain. Our last greeting in Canada
was from the English officers in the pleasant barracks at that place (a class
of gentlemen who had made every hour of our visit memorable by their
hospitality and friendship; and, with "Rule Britannia" sounding in
our ears, soon left it far behind.
But Canada has held,
and always will retain, a foremost place in my remembrance. Few Englishmen are
prepared to find it what it is. Advancing quietly; old differences settling
down, and being fast forgotten; public feeling and private enterprise alike in
a sound and wholesome state; nothing of flush or fever in its system, but
health and vigour throbbing in its steady pulse: it is full of hope and
promise. To me--who had been accustomed to think of it as something left behind
in the strides of advancing society, as something neglected and forgotten,
slumbering and wasting in its sleep--the demand for labour and the rates of
wages; the busy quays of Montreal; the vessels taking in their cargoes, and
discharging them; the amount of shipping in the different ports; the commerce,
roads, and public works, all made to last; the respectability and character of
the public journals; and the amount of rational comfort and happiness which
honest industry may earn: were very great surprises. The steamboats on the
lakes, in their conveniences, cleanliness, and safety; in the gentlemanly
character and bearing of their captains; and in the politeness and perfect
comfort of their social regulations; are unsurpassed even by the famous Scotch
vessels, deservedly so much esteemed at home. The inns are usually bad; because
the custom of boarding at hotels is not so general here as in the States, and
the British officers, who form a large portion of the society in every town,
live chiefly at the regimental messes: but, in every other respect, the
traveller in Canada will find as good provision for his comfort as in any place
I know.
There is one American
boat--the vessel which carried us on Lake Champlain, from St. John's to
Whitehall--which I praise very highly, but no more than it deserves, when I say
that it is superior even to that in which we went from Queenston to Toronto, or
to that in which we travelled from the latter place to Kingston, or, I have no
doubt I may add, to any other in the world. This steamboat, which is called the
Burlington, is a perfectly exquisite achievement of neatness, elegance, and
order. The decks are drawing-rooms; the cabins are boudoirs, choicely furnished
and adorned with prints, pictures, and musical instruments; every nook and corner
in the vessel is a perfect curiosity of graceful comfort and beautiful
contrivance. Captain Sherman, her commander, to whose ingenuity and excellent
taste these results are solely attributable, has bravely and worthily
distinguished himself on more than one trying occasion: not least among them in
having the moral courage to carry British troops, at a time (during the
Canadian rebellion) when no other conveyance was open to them. He and his
vessel are held in universal respect, both by his own countrymen and ours; and
no man ever enjoyed the popular esteem, who, in his sphere of action, won and
wore it better than this gentleman.
By means of this
floating palace we were soon in the United States again, and called that
evening at Burlington; a pretty town, where we lay an hour or so. We reached
Whitehall, where we were to disembark, at six next morning; and might have done
so earlier, but that these steamboats lie by for some hours in the night, in
consequence of the lake becoming very narrow at that part of the journey, and
difficult of navigation in the dark. Its width is so contracted at one point,
indeed, that they are obliged to warp round by means of a rope.
After breakfasting at
Whitehall, we took the stage-coach for Albany: a large and busy town, where we
arrived between five and six o'clock that afternoon; after a very hot day's
journey, for we were now in the height of summer again. At seven we started for
New York on board a great North River steamboat, which was so crowded with
passengers that the upper deck was like the box lobby of a theatre between the
pieces, and the lower one like Tottenham Court Road on a Saturday night. But we
slept soundly, notwithstanding, and soon after five o'clock next morning
reached New York.
Tarrying here only that
day and night to recruit after our late fatigues, we started off once more upon
our last journey in America. We had yet five days to spare before embarking for
England, and I had a great desire to see "the Shaker Village," which
is peopled by a religious sect from whom it takes its name.
To this end, we went up
the North River again as far as the town of Hudson, and there hired an extra to
carry us to Lebanon, thirty miles distant: and of course another and a
different Lebanon from that village where I slept on the night of the Prairie
trip.
The country through
which the road meandered was rich and beautiful; the weather very fine; and for
many miles the Kaatskill Mountains, where Rip Van Winkle and the ghastly
Dutchmen played at ninepins one memorable gusty afternoon, towered in the blue
distance like stately clouds. At one point, as we ascended a steep hill,
athwart whose base a railroad, yet constructing, took its course, we came upon
an Irish colony. With means at hand of building decent cabins, it was wonderful
to see how clumsy, rough, and wretched its hovels were. The best were poor
protection from the weather; the worst let in the wind and rain through wide
breaches in the roofs of sodden grass, and in the walls of mud; some had
neither door nor window; some had nearly fallen down, and were imperfectly
propped up by stakes and poles; all were ruinous and filthy. Hideously ugly old
women and very buxom young ones, pigs, dogs, men, children, babies, pots,
kettles, dunghills, vile refuse, rank straw, and standing water all wallowing
together in an inseparable heap, composed the furniture of every dark and dirty
hut.
Between nine and ten o'
clock at night we arrived at Lebanon: which is renowned for its warm baths, and
for a great hotel, well adapted, I have no doubt, to the gregarious taste of
those seekers after health or pleasure who repair here, but inexpressibly
comfortless to me. We were shown into an immense apartment, lighted by two dim
candles, called the drawing-room: from which there was a descent, by a flight
of steps, to another vast desert called the dining-room: our bedchambers were
among certain long rows of little whitewashed cells, which opened from either
side of a dreary passage; and were so like rooms in a prison that I half
expected to be locked up when I went to bed, and listened involuntarily for the
turning of the key on the outside. There need be baths somewhere in the
neighbourhood, for the other washing arrangements were on as limited a scale as
I ever saw, even in America: indeed, these bedrooms were so very bare of even
such common luxuries as chairs, that I should say they were not provided with
enough of anything, but that I bethink myself of our having been most
bountifully bitten all night.
The house is very pleasantly
situated, however, and we had a good breakfast. That done, we went to visit our
place of destination, which was some two miles off, and the way to which was
soon indicated by a finger-post, whereon was painted, "To the Shaker
Village."
As we rode along, we
passed a party of Shakers, who were at work upon the road; who wore the
broadest of all broad-brimmed hats; and were in all visible respects such very
wooden men, that I felt about as much sympathy for them, and as much interest
in them, as if they had been so many figure-heads of ships. Presently we came
to the beginning of the village, and alighting at the door of a house where the
Shaker manufactures are sold, and which is the head-quarters of the elders,
requested permission to see the Shaker worship.
Pending the conveyance
of this request to some person in authority, we walked into a grim room, where
several grim hats were hanging on grim pegs, and the time was grimly told by a
grim clock, which uttered every tick with a kind of struggle, as if it broke
the grim silence reluctantly, and under protest. Ranged against the wall were
six or eight stiff, high-backed chairs, and they partook so strongly of the
general grimness, that one would much rather have sat on the floor than
incurred the smallest obligation to any of them.
Presently, there
stalked into this apartment a grim old Shaker, with eyes as hard, and dull, and
cold as the great round metal buttons on his coat and waistcoat; a sort of calm
goblin. Being informed of our desire, he produced a newspaper wherein the body of
elders, whereof he was a member, had advertised, but a few days before, that in
consequence of certain unseemly interruptions which their worship had received
from strangers, their chapel was closed to the public for the space of one
year.
As nothing was to be
urged in opposition to this reasonable arrangement, we requested leave to make
some trifling purchases of Shaker goods; which was grimly conceded. We
accordingly repaired to a store in the same house, and on the opposite side of
the passage, where the stock was presided over by something alive in a russet
case, which the elder said was a woman; and which I suppose was a woman, though
I should not have suspected it.
On the opposite side of
the road was their place of worship: a cool, clean edifice of wood, with large
windows and green blinds: like a spacious summer-house. As there was no getting
into this place, and nothing was to be done but walk up and down, and look at
it and the other buildings in the village (which were chiefly of wood, painted
a dark red like English barns, and composed of many stories like English
factories), I have nothing to communicate to the reader beyond the scanty
results I gleaned the while our purchases were making.
These people are called
Shakers from their peculiar form of adoration, which consists of a dance,
performed by the men and women of all ages, who arrange themselves for that
purpose in opposite parties: the men first divesting themselves of their hats
and coats, which they gravely hang against the wall before they begin; and
tying a ribbon round their shirt-sleeves, as though they were going to be bled.
They accompany themselves with a droning, humming noise, and dance until they
are quite exhausted, alternately advancing and retiring in a preposterous sort
of trot. The effect is said to be unspeakably absurd: and if I may judge from a
print of this ceremony which I have in my possession; and which, I am informed
by those who have visited the chapel, is perfectly accurate; it must be
infinitely grotesque.
They are governed by a
woman, and her rule is understood to be absolute, though she has the assistance
of a council of elders. She lives, it is said, in strict seclusion, in certain
rooms above the chapel, and is never shown to profane eyes. If she at all
resemble the lady who presided over the store, it is a great charity to keep
her as close as possible, and I cannot too strongly express my perfect
concurrence in this benevolent proceeding.
All the possessions and
revenues of the settlement are thrown into a common stock, which is managed by
the elders. As they have made converts among people who were well to do in the
world, and are frugal and thrifty, it is understood that this fund prospers:
the more especially as they have made large purchases of land. Nor is this at
Lebanon the only Shaker settlement: there are, I think, at least three others.
They are good farmers,
and all their produce is eagerly purchased and highly esteemed. "Shaker
seeds," "Shaker herbs," and "Shaker distilled waters"
are commonly announced for sale in the shops of towns and cities. They are good
breeders of cattle, and are kind and merciful to the brute creation.
Consequently, Shaker beasts seldom fail to find a ready market.
They eat and drink
together, after the Spartan model, at a great public table. There is no union
of the sexes; and every Shaker, male and female, is devoted to a life of
celibacy. Rumour has been busy upon this theme, but here again I must refer to
the lady of the store, and say, that if many of the sister Shakers resemble
her, I treat all such slander as bearing on its face the strongest marks of
wild improbability. But that they take as proselytes persons so young that they
cannot know their own minds, and cannot possess much strength of resolution in
this or any other respect, I can assert from my own observation of the extreme
juvenility of certain youthful Shakers whom I saw at work among the party on
the road.
They are said to be
good drivers of bargains, but to be honest and just in their transactions, and
even in horse-dealing to resist those thievish tendencies which would seem, for
some undiscovered reason, to be almost inseparable from that branch of traffic.
In all matters they hold their own course quietly, live in their gloomy, silent
commonwealth, and show little desire to interfere with other people.
This is well enough,
but nevertheless I cannot, I confess, incline towards the Shakers; view them
with much favour, or extend towards them any very lenient construction. I so
abhor, and from my soul detest, that bad spirit, no matter by what class or
sect it may be entertained, which would strip life of its healthful graces, rob
youth of its innocent pleasures, pluck from maturity and age their pleasant
ornaments, and make existence but a narrow path towards the grave: that odious
spirit which, if it could have had full scope and sway upon the earth, must
have blasted and made barren the imaginations of the greatest men, and left
them, in their power of raising up enduring images before their
fellow-creatures yet unborn, no better than the beasts: that, in these very
broad-brimmed hats and very sombre coats--in stiff-necked, solemn-visaged
piety, in short, no matter what its garb, whether it have cropped hair as in a
Shaker village, or long nails as in a Hindoo temple--I recognise the worst
among the enemies of Heaven and Earth, who turn the water at the marriage
feasts of this poor world, not into wine, but gall. And if there must be people
vowed to crush the harmless fancies and the love of innocent delights and
gaieties, which are a part of human nature: as much a part of it as any other
love or hope that is our common portion: let them, for me, stand openly
revealed among the ribald and licentious; the very idiots know that they are
not on the Immortal road, and will despise them, and avoid them readily.
Leaving the Shaker
village with a hearty dislike of the old Shakers, and a hearty pity for the
young ones: tempered by the strong probability of their running away as they
grow older and wiser, which they not uncommonly do: we returned to Lebanon, and
so to Hudson, by the way we had come upon the previous day. There we took [the]
steamboat down the North River towards New York, but stopped, some four hours'
journey short of it, at West Point, where we remained that night, and all next
day, and next night too.
In this beautiful
place: the fairest among the fair and lovely Highlands of the North River: shut
in by deep green heights and ruined forts, and looking down upon the distant
town of Newburgh, along a glittering path of sunlit water, with here and there
a skiff, whose white sail often bends on some new tack as sudden flaws of wind
come down upon her from the gullies in the hills: hemmed in, besides, all
round, with memories of Washington and events of the revolutionary war: is the
Military School of America.
It could not stand on
more appropriate ground, and any ground more beautiful can hardly be. The
course of education is severe, but well devised and manly. Through June, July,
and August, the young men encamp upon the spacious plain whereon the college
stands; and all the year their military exercises are performed there daily.
The term of study at this institution, which the State requires from all
cadets, is four years; but, whether it be from the rigid nature of the
discipline, or the national impatience of restraint, or both causes combined,
not more than half the number who begin their studies here ever remain to
finish them.
The number of cadets
being about equal to that of the members of Congress, one is sent here from
every Congressional district: its member influencing the selection. Commissions
in the service are distributed on the same principle. The dwellings of the
various Professors are beautifully situated; and there is a most excellent
hotel for strangers, though it has the two drawbacks of being a
total-abstinence house (wines and spirits being forbidden to the students), and
of serving the public meals at rather uncomfortable hours: to wit, breakfast at
seven, dinner at one, and supper at sunset.
The beauty and
freshness of this calm retreat, in the very dawn and greenness of summer--it
was then the beginning of June-were exquisite indeed. Leaving it upon the
sixth, and returning to New York, to embark for England on the succeeding day,
I was glad to think that among the last memorable beauties which ad glided past
us, and softened in the bright perspective, were those whose pictures, traced
by no common hand, are fresh in most men's minds; not easily to grow old, or
fade beneath the dust of Time: the Kaatskill Mountains, Sleepy Hollow, and the
Tappaan Zee.
I NEVER had so much
interest before, and very likely I shall never have so much interest again, in
the state of the wind as on the long-looked-for morning of Tuesday, the Seventh
of June. Some nautical authority had told me, a day or two previous,
"Anything with west in it will do;" so when I darted out of bed at
daylight, and, throwing up the window, was saluted by a lively breeze from the
north-west which had sprung up in the night, it came upon me so freshly,
rustling with so many happy associations, that I conceived upon the spot a
special regard for all airs blowing from that quarter of the compass, which I
shall cherish, I dare say, until my own wind has breathed its last frail puff,
and withdrawn itself for ever from the mortal calendar.
The pilot had not been
slow to take advantage of this favourable weather, and the ship which yesterday
had been in such a crowded dock that she might have retired from trade for good
and all, for any chance she seemed to have of going to sea, was now full
sixteen miles away. A gallant sight she was, when we, fast gaining on her in a
steamboat, saw her in the distance riding at anchor; her tall masts pointing up
in graceful lines against the sky, and every rope and spar expressed in
delicate and thread-like outline: gallant, too, when, we being all aboard, the
anchor came up to the sturdy chorus, "Cheerily, men, oh, cheerily!"
and she followed proudly in the towing steamboat's wake: but bravest and most
gallant of all when, the tow-rope being cast adrift, the canvas fluttered from
her masts, and, spreading her white wings, she soared away upon her free and
solitary course.
In the after-cabin we
were only fifteen passengers in all, and the greater part were from Canada,
where some of us had known each other. The night was rough and squally, so were
the next two days, but they flew by quickly, and we were soon as cheerful and
as snug a party, with an honest, manly-hearted captain at our head, as ever
came to the resolution of being mutually agreeable, on land or water.
We breakfasted at
eight, lunched at twelve, dined at three, and took our tea at half-past seven.
We had abundance of amusements, and dinner was not the least among them:
firstly, for its own sake; secondly, because of its extraordinary length: its
duration, inclusive of all the long pauses between the courses, being seldom
less than two hours and a half; which was a subject of never-failing
entertainment. By way of beguiling the tediousness of these banquets, a select
association was formed at the lower end of the table, below the mast, to whose
distinguished president modesty forbids me to make any further allusion, which,
being a very hilarious and jovial institution, was (prejudice apart) in high
favour with the rest of the community, and particularly with a black steward,
who lived for three weeks in a broad grin at the marvellous humour of these
incorporated worthies.
Then we had chess for
those who played it, whist, cribbage, books, backgammon, and shovelboard. In
all weathers, fair or foul, calm or windy, we were every one on deck, walking
up and down in pairs, lying in the boats, leaning over the side, or chatting in
a lazy group together. We had no lack of music, for one played the accordion,
another the violin, and another (who usually began at six o'clock A.M.) the
key-bugle: the combined effect of which instruments, when they all played
different tunes, in different parts of the ship, at the same time, and within
hearing of each other, as they sometimes did (everybody being intensely
satisfied with his own performance), was sublimely hideous.
When all these means of
entertainment failed, a sail would heave in sight; looming, perhaps, the very
spirit of a ship, in the misty distance, or passing us so close that through
our glasses we could see the people on her decks, and easily make out her name,
and whither she was bound. For hours together we could watch the dolphins and
porpoises as they rolled and leaped and dived around the vessel; or those small
creatures ever on the wing, the Mother Carey's chickens, which had borne us
company from New York Bay, and for a whole fortnight fluttered about the
vessel's stern. For some days we had a dead calm, or very light winds, during
which the crew amused themselves with fishing, and hooked an unlucky dolphin,
who expired, in all his rainbow colours, on the deck: an event of such
importance in our barren calendar, that afterwards we dated from the dolphin,
and made the day on which he died an era.
Besides all this, when
we were five or six days out, there began to be much talk of icebergs, of which
wandering islands an unusual number had been seen by the vessels that had come
into New York a day or two before we left that port, and of whose dangerous
neighbourhood we were warned by the sudden coldness of the weather, and the
sinking of the mercury in the barometer. While these tokens lasted, a double
look-out was kept, and many dismal tales were whispered, after dark, of ships
that had struck upon the ice and gone down in the night; but the wind obliging
us to hold a southward course, we saw none of them, and the weather soon grew
bright and warm again.
The observation every
day at noon, and the subsequent working of the vessel's course, was, as may be
supposed, a feature in our lives of paramount importance; nor were there
wanting (as there never are) sagacious doubters of the captain's calculations,
who, so soon as his back was turned, would, in the absence of compasses,
measure the chart with bits of string, and ends of pocket-handkerchiefs, and
points of snuffers, and clearly prove him to be wrong by an odd thousand miles
or so. It was very edifying to see these unbelievers shake their heads and
frown, and hear them hold forth strongly upon navigation: not that they know
anything about it, but that they always mistrusted the captain in calm weather,
or when the wind was adverse. Indeed, the mercury itself is not so variable as
this class of passengers, whom you will see, when the ship is going nobly
through the water, quite pale with admiration, swearing that the captain beats
all captains ever known, and even hinting at subscriptions for a piece of
plate; and who, next morning, when the breeze has lulled, and all the sails
hang useless in the idle air, shake their despondent heads again, and say, with
screwed-up lips, they hope that the captain is a sailor--but they shrewdly
doubt him.
It even became an
occupation in the calm to wonder when the wind would spring up in the
favourable quarter, where, it was clearly shown by all the rules and
precedents, it ought to have sprung up long ago. The first mate, who whistled
for it zealously, was much respected for his perseverance, and was regarded,
even by the unbelievers, as a first-rate sailor. Many gloomy looks would be
cast upward through the cabin sky-lights at the flapping sails while dinner was
in progress; and some, growing bold in ruefulness, predicted that we should
land about the middle of July. There are always on board ship a Sanguine One
and a Despondent One. The latter character carried it hollow at this period of
the voyage, and triumphed over the Sanguine One at every meal, by inquiring
where he supposed the Great Western (which left New York a week after us) was
now: and where he supposed the Cunard steam-packet was now: and what he thought
of sailing vessels as compared with steam-ships now: and so beset his life with
pestilent attacks of that kind, that he, too, was obliged to affect despondency
for very peace and quietude.
These were additions to
the list of entertaining incidents, but there was still another source of
interest. We carried in the steerage nearly a hundred passengers: a little
world of poverty: and, as we came to know individuals among them by sight,
looking down upon the deck where they took the air in the daytime, and cooked
their food, and very often ate it too, we came to know their histories, and
with what expectations they had gone out to America, and on what errands they
were going home, and what their circumstances were. The information we got on
these heads from the carpenter, who had charge of these people, was often of
the strangest kind. Some of them had been in America but three days, some but three
months, and some had gone out in the last voyage of that very ship in which
they were now returning home. Others had sold their clothes to raise the
passage-money, and had hardly rags to cover them; others had no food, and lived
upon the charity of the rest: and one man, it was discovered nearly at the end
of the voyage, not before--for he kept his secret close, and did not court
compassion--had had no sustenance whatever but the bones and scraps of fat he
took from the plates used in the after-cabin dinner, when they were put out to
be washed.
The whole system of
shipping and conveying these unfortunate persons is one that stands in need of
thorough revision. If any class deserve to be protected and assisted by the
Government, it is that class who are banished from their native land in search
of the bare means of subsistence. All that could be done for these poor people
by the great compassion and humanity of the captain and officers was done, but
they require much more. The law is bound, at least upon the English side, to
see that too many of them are not put on board one ship: and that their
accommodations are decent: not demoralising and profligate. It is bound, too,
in common humanity, to declare that no man shall be taken on board without his
stock of provisions being previously inspected by some proper officer, and
pronounced moderately sufficient for his support upon the voyage. It is bound
to provide, or to require that there be provided, a medical attendant; whereas
in these ships there are none, though sickness of adults, and deaths of
children, on the passage, are matters of the very commonest occurrence. Above
all, it is the duty of any Government, be it monarchy or republic, to interpose
and put an end to that system by which a firm of traders in emigrants purchase
of the owners the whole 'tween-decks of a ship, and send on board as many
wretched people as they can lay hold of, on any terms they can get, without the
smallest reference to the conveniences of the steerage, the number of berths,
the slightest separation of the sexes, or anything but their own immediate
profit. Nor is even this the worst of the vicious system: for, certain crimping
agents of these houses, who have a percentage on all the passengers they
inveigle, are constantly travelling about those districts where poverty and
discontent are rife, and tempting the credulous into more misery, by holding
out monstrous inducements to emigration which can never be realised.
The history of every
family we had on board was pretty much the same. After hoarding up, and
borrowing, and begging, and selling everything to pay the passage, they had
gone out to New York, expecting to find its streets paved with gold; and had
found them paved with very hard and very real stones. Enterprise was dull;
labourers were not wanted; jobs of work were to be got, but the payment was
not. They were coming back, even poorer than they went. One of them was
carrying an open letter from a young English artisan, who had been in New York
a fortnight, to a friend near Manchester, whom he strongly urged to follow him.
One of the officers brought it to as a curiosity. "This is the country,
Jem," said the writer. "I like America. There is no despotism here; that's
the great thing. Employment of all sorts is going a-begging, and wages are
capital. You have only to choose a trade, Jem, and be it. I haven't made choice
of one yet, but I shall soon. At present, I haven't quite made up my mind
whether to be a carpenter--or a tailor."
There was yet another
kind of passenger, and but one more, who, in the calm and the light winds, was
a constant theme of conversation and observation among us. This was an English
sailor, a smart, thorough-built, English man-of-war's-man from his hat to his
shoes, who was serving in the American navy, and, having got leave of absence,
was on his way home to see his friends. When he presented himself to take and
pay for his passage, it had been suggested to him that, being an able seaman,
he might as well work it and save the money, but this piece of advice he very
indignantly rejected: saying, "He'd be damned but for once he'd go aboard
ship as a gentleman." Accordingly, they took his money, but he no sooner
came aboard than he stowed his kit in the forecastle, arranged to mess with the
crew, and, the very first time the hands were turned up, went aloft like a cat,
before anybody. And all through the passage there he was, first at the braces,
outermost on the yards, perpetually lending a hand everywhere, but always with
a sober dignity in his manner, and a sober grin on his face, which plainly
said, "I do it as a gentleman. For my own pleasure, mind you!"
At length and at last,
the promised wind came up in right good earnest, and away we went before it,
with every stitch of canvas set, slashing through the water nobly. There was a
grandeur in the motion of the splendid ship, as, overshadowed by her mass of
sails, she rode at a furious pace upon the waves, which filled one with an indescribable
sense of pride and exultation. As she plunged into a foaming valley, how I
loved the green waves, bordered deep with white, come rushing on astern, to
buoy her upward at their pleasure, and curl about her as she stooped again, but
always own her for their haughty mistress still! On, on we flew, with changing
lights upon the water, being now in the blessed region of fleecy skies; a
bright sun lighting us by day, and a bright moon by night; the vane pointing
directly homeward, alike the truthful index to the favouring wind and to our
cheerful hearts; until at sunrise, one fair Monday morning--the twenty-seventh
of June, I shall not easily forget the dayþ-there lay before us old Cape Clear,
God bless it, showing, in the mist of early morning, like a cloud: the
brightest and most welcome cloud, to us, that ever hid the face of Heaven's
fallen sisterþ-Home.
Dim speck as it was in
the wide prospect, it made the sunrise a more cheerful sight, and gave to it
that sort of human interest which it seems to want at sea. There, as elsewhere,
the return of day is inseparable from some sense of renewed hope and gladness;
but the light shining on the dreary waste of water, and showing it in all its
vast extent of loneliness, presents a solemn spectacle, which even night,
veiling it in darkness and uncertainty, does not surpass. The rising of the
moon is more in keeping with the solitary ocean; and has an air of melancholy
grandeur, which, in its soft and gentle influence, seems to comfort while it
saddens. I recollect, when I was a very young child, having a fancy that the
reflection of the moon in water was a path to Heaven, trodden by the spirits of
good people on their way to God; and this old feeling often came over me again,
when I watched it on a tranquil night at sea.
The wind was very light
on this same Monday morning, but was still in the right quarter, and so, by
slow degrees, we left Cape Clear behind, and sailed along within sight of the
coast of Ireland. And how merry we all were, and how loyal to the George
Washington, and how full of mutual congratulations, and how venturesome in
predicting the exact hour at which we should arrive at Liverpool, may be easily
imagined and readily understood. Also, how heartily we drank the captain's
health that day at dinner; and how restless we became about packing up; and how
two or three of the most sanguine spirits rejected the idea of going to bed at
all that night as something it was not worth while to do, so near the shore,
but went nevertheless, and slept soundly; and how to be so near our journey's
end was like a pleasant dream, from which one feared to wake.
The friendly breeze
freshened again next day, and on we went once more before it gallantly:
descrying now and then an English ship going homeward under shortened sail,
while we, with every inch of canvas crowded on, dashed gaily past, and left her
far behind. Towards evening the weather turned hazy, with a drizzling rain; and
soon became so thick, that we sailed, as it were, in a cloud. Still we swept
onward like a phantom ship, and many an eager eye glanced up to where the
Look-out on the mast kept watch for Holyhead.
At length his
long-expected cry was heard, and at the same moment there shone out from the
haze and mist ahead a gleaming light, which presently was gone, and soon
returned, a was gone again. Whenever it came back, the eyes of all on board
brightened and sparkled like itself: and there we all stood, watching this
revolving light upon the rock at Holyhead, praising it for its brightness and its
friendly warning, and lauding it, in short, above all other signal lights that
ever were displayed, until it once more glimmered faintly in the distance, far
behind us.
Then, it was time to
fire a gun for a pilot; and, almost before its smoke had cleared away, a little
boat with a light at her masthead came bearing down upon us, through the
darkness swiftly. And presently, our sails being backed, she ran alongside; and
the hoarse pilot, wrapped and muffled in pea-coats and shawls to the very
bridge of his weather-ploughed-up nose, stood bodily among us on the deck. And
I think, if that pilot had wanted to borrow fifty pounds for an indefinite
period on no security, we should have engaged to lend it him, among us, before
his boat had dropped astern, or (which is the same thing) before every scrap of
news in the paper he brought with him had become the common property of all on
board.
We turned in pretty
late that night, and turned out pretty early next morning. By six o'clock we
clustered on the deck, prepared to go ashore; and looked upon the spires and
roofs, and smoke, of Liverpool. By eight we all sat down in one of its hotels,
to eat and drink together for the last time. And by nine we had shaken hands
all round, and broken up our social company for ever. The country, by the
railroad, seemed, as we rattled through it, like a luxuriant garden. The beauty
of the fields (so small they looked!), the hedgerows, and the trees; the pretty
cottages, the beds of flowers, the old churchyards, the antique houses, and
every well-known object; the exquisite delights of that one journey crowding,
in the short compass of a summer's day, the joy of many years, and winding up
with Home, and all that makes it dear; no tongue can tell, or pen of mine
describe.
THE upholders of
slavery in America--of the atrocities of which system I shall not write one
word for which I have not ample proof and warrant-þmay be divided into three
great classes.
The first are those
more moderate and rational owners of human cattle who have come into the
possession of them as so many coins in their trading capital, but who admit the
frightful nature of the Institution in the abstract, and perceive the dangers
to society with which it is fraught: dangers which, however distant they may
be, or howsoever tardy in their coming on, are as certain to fall upon its
guilty head as is the Day of Judgment.
The second consists of
all those owners, breeders, users, buyers, and sellers of slaves, who will,
until the bloody chapter has a bloody end, own, breed, use, buy, and sell them
at all hazards; who doggedly deny the horrors of the system, in the teeth of
such a mass of evidence as never was brought to bear on any other subject, and
to which the experience of every day contributes its immense amount; who would,
at this or any other moment, gladly involve America in a war, civil or foreign,
provided that it had for its sole end and object the assertion of their right
to perpetuate slavery, and to whip and work and torture slaves, unquestioned by
any human authority, and unassailed by any human power; who, when they speak of
Freedom, mean the Freedom to oppress their kind, and to be savage, merciless,
and cruel; and of whom every man on his own ground, in Republican America, is a
more exacting, and a sterner, and a less responsible despot than the Caliph
Haroun Alraschid in his angry robe of scarlet.
The third, and not the
least numerous or influential, is composed of all that delicate gentility which
cannot bear a superior, and cannot brook an equal; of that class whose
Republicanism means, "I will not tolerate a man above me: and, of those
below, none must approach too near;" whose pride, in a land where
voluntary servitude is shunned as a disgrace, must be ministered to by slaves;
and whose inalienable rights can only have their growth in negro wrongs.
It has been sometimes
urged that, in the unavailing efforts which have been made to advance the cause
of Human Freedom in the republic of America (strange cause for history to treat
of!), sufficient regard has not been had to the existence of the first class of
persons; and it has been contended that they are hardly used, in being
confounded with the second. This is, no doubt, the case; noble instances of
pecuniary and personal sacrifice have already had their growth among them; and
it is much to be regretted that the gulf between them and the advocates of
emancipation should have been widened and deepened by any means: the rather as
there are, beyond dispute, among these slave-owners, many kind masters who are
tender in the exercise of their unnatural power. Still it is to be feared that
this injustice is inseparable from the state of things with which humanity and
truth are called upon to deal. Slavery is not a whit the more endurable because
some hearts are to be found which can partially resist its hardening
influences; nor can the indignant tide of honest wrath stand still, because in
its onward course it overwhelms a few who are comparatively innocent among a
host of guilty.
The ground most
commonly taken by these better men among the advocates of slavery is this:
"It is a bad system; and for myself I would willingly get rid of it, if I
could; most willingly. But it is not so bad as you in England take it to be.
You are deceived by the representations of the emancipationists. The greater
part of my slaves are much attached to me. You will say that I do not allow
them to be severely treated; but I will put it to you whether you believe that
it can be a general practice to treat them inhumanly, when it would impair
their value, and would be obviously against the interests of their
masters."
Is it the interest of
any man to steal, to game, to waste his health and mental faculties by
drunkenness, to lie, forswear himself, indulge hatred, seek desperate revenge,
or do murder? No. All these are roads to ruin. And why, then, do men tread
them? Because such inclinations are among the vicious qualities of mankind.
Blot out, ye friends of slavery, from the catalogue of human passions, brutal
lust, cruelty, and the abuse of irresponsible power (of all earthly temptations
the most difficult to be resisted), and when ye have done so, and not before,
we will inquire whether it be the interest of a master to lash and maim the
slaves, over whose lives and limbs he has an absolute control!
But again: this class,
together with that last one I have named, the miserable aristocracy spawned of
a false republic, lift up their voices and exclaim, "Public opinion is
all-sufficient to prevent such cruelty as you denounce." Public opinion!
Why, public opinion in the slave States is slavery, is it not? Public opinion
in the slave States has delivered the slaves over to the gentle mercies of
their masters. Public opinion has made the laws, and denied the slaves
legislative protection. Public opinion has knotted the lash, heated the
branding-iron, loaded the rifle, and shielded the murderer. Public opinion
threatens the abolitionist with death, if he venture to the South; and drags
him with a rope about his middle, in broad unblushing noon, through the first
city in the East. Public opinion has, within a few years, burned a slave alive
at a slow fire in the city of St. Louis; and public opinion has to this day
maintained upon the bench that estimable Judge who charged the Jury, impanelled
there to try his murderers, that their most horrid deed was an act of public
opinion, and, being so, must not be punished by the laws the public sentiment
had made. Public opinion hailed this doctrine with a howl of wild applause, and
set the prisoners free, to walk the city, men of mark, and influence, and
station, as they had been before.
Public opinion! what
class of men have an immense preponderance over the rest of the community in
their power of representing public opinion in the legislature? The
slave-owners. They send from their twelve States one hundred members, while the
fourteen free States, with a free population nearly double, return but a
hundred and forty-two. Before whom do the presidential candidates bow down the
most humbly, on whom do they fawn the most fondly, and for whose tastes do they
cater the most assiduously in their servile protestations? The slave-owners
always. Public opinion! hear the public opinion of the free South as expressed
by its own members in the House of Representatives at Washington. "I have
a great respect for the chair," quoth North Carolina, "I have a great
respect for the chair as an officer of the House, and a great respect for him
personally; nothing but that respect prevents me from rushing to the table, and
tearing that petition which has just been presented for the abolition of
slavery in the district of Columbia, to pieces."--"I warn the
abolitionists," says South Carolina, "ignorant, infuriated barbarians
as they are, that if chance shall throw any of them into our hands, he may
expect a felon's death."--"Let an abolitionist come within the
borders of South Carolina," cries a third; mild Carolina's colleague;
"and if we can catch him, we will try him, and, notwithstanding the interference
of all the governments on earth, including the Federal Government, we will HANG
him."
Public opinion has made
this law.--It has declared that in Washington, in that city which takes its
name from the father of American liberty, any justice of the peace may bind
with fetters any negro passing down the street, and thrust him into gaol: no
offence on the black man's part is necessary. The justice says, "I choose
to think this man a runaway:" and locks him up. Public opinion empowers the
man of law, when this is done, to advertise the negro in the newspapers,
warning his owner to come and claim him, or he will be sold to pay the gaol
fees. But supposing he is a free black, and has no owner, it may naturally be
presumed that he is set at liberty. No: HE IS SOLD TO RECOMPENSE HIS GAOLER.
This has been done again, and again, and again. He has no means of proving his
freedom; has no adviser, messenger, or assistance of any or kind; no
investigation into his case is made, or inquiry instituted. He, a free man, who
may have served for years, and bought his liberty, is thrown into gaol on no
process, for no crime, and on no pretence of crime: and is sold to pay the gaol
fees. This seems incredible, even of America, but it is the law.
Public opinion is deferred
to in such cases as the following; which is headed in the newspapers--
"Interesting
Law-Case.
"An interesting
case is now on trial in the Supreme Court, arising out of the following facts.
A gentleman residing in Maryland had allowed an aged pair of his slaves
substantial though not legal freedom for several years. While thus living, a
daughter was born to them, who grew up in the same liberty, until she married a
free negro, and went with him to reside in Pennsylvania. They had several
children, and lived unmolested until the original owner died, when his heir
attempted to regain them; but the magistrate before whom they were brought
decided that he had no jurisdiction in the case. The owner seized the woman and
her children in the night, and carried them to Maryland."
"Cash for
negroes," "cash for negroes," "cash for negroes,~ is the
heading of advertisements in great capitals down the long columns of the
crowded journals. Woodcuts of a runaway negro with manacled hands, crouching
beneath a bluff pursuer in top-boots, who, having caught him, grasps him by the
throat, agreeably diversify the pleasant text. The leading article protests
against "that abominable and hellish doctrine of abolition, which is
repugnant alike to every law of God and nature." The delicate mamma, who
smiles her acquiescence in this sprightly writing as she reads the paper in her
cool piazza, quiets her youngest child who clings about her skirts by promising
the boy "a whip to beat the little niggers with."--But the negroes, little
and big, are protected by public opinion.
Let us try this public
opinion by another test, which is important in three points of view: first, as
showing how desperately timid of the public opinion slave-owners are in their
delicate descriptions of fugitive slaves in widely-circulated newspapers;
secondly, as showing how perfectly contented the slaves are, and how very
seldom they run away; thirdly, as exhibiting their entire freedom from scar, or
blemish, or any mark of cruel infliction, as their pictures are drawn, not by
lying abolitionists, but by their own truthful masters.
The following are a few
specimens of the advertisements in the public papers. It is only four years
since the oldest among them appeared; and others of the same nature continue to
be published every day in shoals.
"Ran away, Negress
Caroline. Had on a collar with one prong turned down."
"Ran away, a black
woman, Betsy. Had an iron bar on her right leg."
"Ran away, the
negro Manuel. Much marked with irons."
"Ran away, the
negress Fanny. Had on an iron band about her neck."
"Ran away, a negro
boy about twelve years old. Had round his neck a chain dog-collar with 'De
Lampert' engraved on it."
"Ran away, the
negro Hown. Has a ring of iron on his left foot. Also, Grise, his wife, having
a ring and chain on the left leg."
"Ran away, a negro
boy named James. Said boy was ironed when he left me."
"Committed to
jail, a man who calls his name John. He has a clog of iron on his right foot
which will weigh four or five pounds."
"Detained at the
police jail, the negro wench, Myra. Has several marks of LASHING, and has irons
on her feet."
"Ran away, a negro
woman and two children. A few days before she went off, I burnt her with a hot
iron, on the left side of her face. I tried to make the letter M."
"Ran away, a negro
man named Henry; his left eye out, some scars from a dirk on and under his left
arm, and much scarred with the whip."
"One hundred
dollars reward, for a negro fellow, Pompey, 40 years old. He is branded on the
left jaw."
"Committed to
jail, a negro man. Has no toes on the left foot."
"Ran away, a negro
woman named Rachel. Has lost all her toes except the large one."
"Ran away, Sam. He
was shot a short time since through the hand, and has several shots in his left
arm and side."
"Ran away, my
negro man Dennis. Said negro has been shot in the left arm between the
shoulders and elbow, which has paralysed the left hand."
"Ran away, my
negro man named Simon. He has been shot badly, in his back and right arm."
"Ran away, a negro
named Arthur. Has a considerable scar across his breast and each arm, made by a
knife; loves to talk much of the goodness of God."
"Twenty-five
dollars reward for my man Isaac. He has a scar on his forehead, caused by a
blow; and one on his back, made by a shot from a pistol."
"Ran away, a negro
girl called Mary. Has a small scar over her eye, a good many teeth missing, the
letter A is branded on her cheek and forehead."
"Ran away, negro
Ben. Has a scar on his right hand; his thumb and forefinger being injured by
being shot last fall. A part of the bone came out. He has also one or two large
scars on his back and hips."
"Detained at the
jail, a mulatto, named Tom. Has a scar on the right cheek, and appears to have
been burned with powder on the face."
"Ran away, a negro
man named Ned. Three of his fingers are drawn into the palm of his hand by a
cut. Has a scar on the back of his neck, nearly half round, done by a
knife."
"Was committed to
jail, a negro man. Says his name is Josiah. His back very much scarred by the
whip; and branded on the thigh and hips in three or four places, thus (J M).
The rim of his right ear has been bit or cut off."
"Fifty dollars
reward, for my fellow Edward. He has a scar on the corner of his mouth, two
cuts on and under his arm, and the letter E on his arm."
"Ran away, negro
boy Ellie. Has a scar on one of his arms from the bite of a dog."
"Ran away, from
the plantation of James Surgette, the following negroes: Randal, has one ear
cropped; Bob, has lost one eye; Kentucky Tom, has one jaw broken."
"Ran away,
Anthony. One of his ears cut off, and his left hand cut with an axe."
"Fifty dollars
reward for the negro Jim Blake. Has a piece cut out of each ear, and the middle
finger of the left hand cut off to the second joint."
"Ran away, a negro
woman named Maria. Has a scar on one side of her cheek, by a cut. Some scars on
her back."
"Ran away, the
Mulatto wench Mary. Has a cut on the left arm, a scar on the left shoulder, and
two upper teeth missing."
I should say, perhaps,
in explanation of this latter piece of description, that, among the other
blessings which public opinion secures to the negroes, is the common practice
of violently punching out their teeth. To make them wear iron collars by day
and night, and to worry them with dogs, are practices almost too ordinary to
deserve mention.
"Ran away, my man
Fountain. Has holes in his ears, a scar on the right side of his forehead, has
been shot in the hind parts of his legs, and is marked on the back with the
whip."
"Two hundred and
fifty dollars reward for my negro man Jim. He is much marked with shot in his
right thigh. The shot entered on the outside, halfway between the hip and knee
joints."
"Brought to jail,
John. Left ear cropt."
"Taken up, a negro
man. Is very much scarred about the face and body, and has the left ear bit
off."
"Ran away, a black
girl named Mary. Has a scar on her cheek, and the end of one of her toes cut
off."
"Ran away, my
mulatto woman, Judy. She has had her right arm broke."
"Ran away, my
negro man, Levi. His left hand has been burnt, and I think the end of his
forefinger is off."
" Ran away, a
negro man, NAMED WASHINGTON. Has lost a part of his middle finger, and the end
of his little finger."
"Twenty-five
dollars reward for my man John. The tip of his nose is bit off."
"Twenty-five
dollars reward for the negro slave Sally. Walks as though crippled in the
back."
"Ran away, Joe
Dennis. Has a small notch in one of his ears."
"Ran away, negro
boy, Jack. Has a small crop out of his left ear."
"Ran away, a negro
man, named Ivory. Has a small piece cut out of the top of each ear."
While upon the subject
of ears, I may observe that a distinguished abolitionist in New York once
received a negro's ear, which had been cut off close to the head, in a general
post letter. It was forwarded by the free and independent gentleman who had
caused it to be amputated, with a polite request that he would place the
specimen in his "collection."
I could enlarge this
catalogue with broken arms, and broken legs, and gashed flesh, and missing
teeth, and lacerated backs, and bites of dogs, and brands of red-hot irons
innumerable: but, as my readers will be sufficiently sickened and repelled
already, I will turn to another branch of the subject.
These advertisements,
of which a similar collection might be made for every year, and month, and
week, and day; and which are coolly read in families as things of course, and
as a part of the current news and small-talk; will serve to show how very much
the slaves profit by public opinion, and how tender it is in their behalf. But
it may be worth while to inquire how the slave-owners, and the class of society
to which great numbers of them belong, defer to public opinion in their
conduct, not to their slaves, but to each other; how they are accustomed to
restrain their passions; what their bearing is among themselves; whether they
are fierce or gentle, whether their social customs be brutal, sanguinary, and
violent, or bear tho impress of civilisation and refinement.
That we may have no
partial evidence from abolitionists in this inquiry either, I will once more
turn to their own newspapers, and I will confine myself, this time, to a
selection from paragraphs which appeared from day to day during my visit to
America, and which refer to occurrences happening while I was there. The
italics in these extracts, as in the foregoing, are my own.
These cases did not ALL
occur, it will be seen, in territory actually belonging to legalised Slave
States, though most, and those the very worst among them, did, as their
counterparts constantly do; but the position of the scenes of action in
reference to places immediately at hand, where slavery is the law; and the
strong resemblance between that class of outrages and the rest; lead to the
just presumption that the character of the parties concerned was formed in
slave districts, and brutalised by slave customs.
"Horrible Tragedy.
"By a slip from
The Southport Telegraph, Wisconsin, we learn that the Hon. Charles C. P. Arndt,
Member of the Council for Brown county, was shot dead on the floor of the
Council chamber, by James R. Vinyard, Member from Grant county. The affair grew
out of a nomination for Sheriff of Grant county. Mr. E. S. Baker was nominated
and supported by Mr. Arndt. This nomination was opposed by Vinyard, who wanted
the appointment to vest in his own brother. In the course of debate, the
deceased made some statements which Vinyard pronounced false, and made use of
violent and insulting language, dealing largely in personalities, to which Mr.
A. made no reply. After the adjournment, Mr. A. stepped up to Vinyard, and requested
him to retract, which he refused to do, repeating the offensive words. Mr.
Arndt then made a blow at Vinyard, who drew back a pace, drew pistol, and shot
him dead.
"The issue appears
to have been provoked on the part of Vinyard, who was determined at all hazards
to defeat the appointment of Baker, and who, himself defeated, turned his ire
and revenge upon the unfortunate Arndt."
"The Wisconsin
Tragedy.
"Public
indignation runs high in the territory of Wisconsin in relation to the murder
of C. C. P. Arndt, in the Legislative Hall of the Territory. Meetings have been
held in different counties of Wisconsin, denouncing the practice of secretly
bearing arms in the Legislative chambers of the country. We have seen the
account of the expulsion of James R. Vinyard, the perpetrator of the bloody
deed, and are amazed to hear, that, after this expulsion by those who saw
Vinyard kill Mr. Arndt in the presence of his aged father, who was on a visit
to see his son, little dreaming that he was to witness his murder, Judge Dunn
has discharged Vinyard on bail. The Miners' Free Press speaks in terms of
merited rebuke at the outrage upon the feelings of the people of Wisconsin.
Vinyard was within arm's length of Mr. Arndt, when he took such deadly aim at
him, that he never spoke. Vinyard might at pleasure, being so near, have only
wounded him, but he chose to kill him."
Murder.
"By a letter in a
St. Louis paper of the 14th, we notice a terrible outrage at Burlington, Iowa.
A Mr. Bridgman having had a difficulty with a citizen of the place, Mr. Ross; a
brother-in-law of the latter provided himself with one of Colt's revolving
pistols, met Mr. B. in the street, and discharged the contents of five of the
barrels at him: each shot taking effect. Mr. B., though horribly wounded, and
dying, returned the fire, and killed Ross on the spot."
Terrible death of
Robert Potter
"From the 'Caddo
Gazette,' of the 12th inst., we learn the frightful death of Colonel Robert
Potter. . . . He was beset in his house by an enemy, named Rose. He sprang from
his couch, seized his gun, and, in his night clothes, rushed from the house.
For about two hundred yards his speed seemed to defy his pursuers; but, getting
entangled in a thicket, he was captured. Rose told him that he intended to act
a generous part, and give him a chance for his life. He then told Potter he
might run, and he should not be interrupted till he reached a certain distance.
Potter started at the word of command, and before a gun was fired he had
reached the lake. His first impulse was to jump into the water and dive for it,
which he did. Rose was close behind him, and formed his men on the bank ready
to shoot him as he rose. In a few seconds he came up to breathe; and scarce had
his head reached the surface of the water when it was completely riddled with
the shot of their guns, and he sunk, to rise no more!"
Murder in Arkansas.
"We understand
that a severe rencontre came off a few days since in the Seneca Nation, between
Mr. Loose, the sub-agent of the mixed band of the Senecas, Quapaw, and
Shawnees, and Mr. James Gillespie, of the mercantile firm of Thomas G. Allison
and Co., of Maysville, Benton County, Ark., in which the latter was slain with
a bowie-knife. Some difficulty had for some time existed between the parties.
It is said that Major Gillespie brought on the attack with a cane. A severe
conflict ensued, during which two pistols were fired by Gillespie and one by
Loose. Loose then stabbed Gillespie with one of those never-failing weapons, a
bowie-knife. The death of Major G. is much regretted, as he was a
liberal-minded and energetic man. Since the above was in type, we have learned
that Major Allison has stated to some of our citizens in town that Mr. Loose
gave the first blow. We forbear to give any particulars, as the matter will be
the subject of judicial investigation."
Foul Deed
"The steamer
Thames, just from [the] Missouri river, brought us a handbill, offering a
reward of 500 dollars, for the person who assassinated Lilburn W. Baggs, late
Governor of this State, at Independence, on the night of the 6th inst. Governor
Baggs, it is stated in a written memorandum, was not dead, but mortally
wounded.
"Since the above
was written, we received a note from the clerk of the Thames, giving the
following particulars. Gov. Baggs was shot by some villain on Friday, 6th
inst., in the evening, while sitting in a room in his own house in
Independence. His son, a boy, hearing a report, ran into the room, and found
the Governor sitting in his chair, with his jaw fallen down, and his head
leaning back: on discovering the injury done to his father, he gave the alarm.
Foot tracks were found in the garden below the window, and a pistol picked up
supposed to have been overloaded, and thrown from the hand of the scoundrel who
fired it. Three buck shots of a heavy load took effect; one going through his
mouth, one into the brain, and another probably in or near the brain; all going
into the back part of the neck and head. The Governor was still alive on the
morning of the 7th; but no hopes for his recovery by his friends, and but
slight hopes from his physicians.
"A man was
suspected, and the Sheriff most probably has possession of him by this time.
"The pistol was
one of a pair stolen some days previous from a baker in Independence, and the
legal authorities have the description of the other."
Rencontre
"An unfortunate
affair took place on Friday evening in Chartres Street, in which one of our
most respectable citizens received a dangerous wound, from a poignard, in the
abdomen. From the Bee (New Orleans) of yesterday, we learn the following
particulars. It appears that an article was published in the French side of the
paper on Monday last, containing some strictures on the Artillery Battalion for
firing their guns on Sunday morning, in answer to those from the Ontario and
Woodbury, and thereby much alarm was caused to the families of those persons
who were out all night preserving the peace of the city. Major C. Gally,
Commander of the battalion, resenting this, called at the office and demanded
the author's name; that of Mr. P. Arpin was given to him, who was absent at the
time. Some angry words then passed with one of the proprietors, and a challenge
followed; the friends of both parties tried to arrange the affair, but failed
to do so. On Friday evening, about seven o'clock, Major Gally met Mr. P. Arpin
in Chartres Street, and accosted him. 'Are you Mr. Arpin?'
"'Yes, sir.'
"'Then I have to
tell you that you are a ----'(applying an appropriate epithet).
"'I shall remind
you of your words, sir.'
"'But I have said
I would break my cane on your shoulders.'
"'I know it, but I
have not yet received the blow.'
"At these words,
Major Gally, having a cane in his hands, struck Mr. Arpin across the face, and
the latter drew a poignard from his pocket and stabbed Major Gally in the
abdomen.
"Fears are
entertained that the wound will be mortal. We understand that Mr. Arpin has
given security for his appearance at the Criminal Court to answer the
charge."
Affray in Mississippi
"On the 27th ult.,
in an affray near Carthage, Leake county, Mississippi, between James Cottingham
and John Wilburn, the latter was shot by the former, and so horribly wounded,
that there was no hope of his recovery. On the 2nd instant, there was an affray
at Carthage between A. C. Sharkey and George Goff, in which the latter was
shot, and thought mortally wounded. Sharkey delivered himself up to the
authorities, but changed his mind and escaped!"
Personal Encounter
"An encounter took
place in Sparta, a few days since, between the barkeeper of an hotel, and a man
named Bury. It appears that Bury had become somewhat noisy, and that the
barkeeper, determined to preserve order, had threatened to shoot Bury,
whereupon Bury drew a pistol and shot the barkeeper down. He was not dead at
the last accounts, but slight hopes were entertained of his recovery."
Duel
"The clerk of the
steamboat Tribune informs us that another duel was fought on Tuesday last, by
Mr. Robbins, a bank officer in Vicksburg, and Mr. fall, the editor of the
Vicksburg Sentinel.
According to the
arrangement, the parties had six pistols each, which, after the word 'Fire!'
they were to discharge as fast as they pleased. Fall fired two pistols without
effect. Mr. Robbins' first shot took effect in Fall's thigh, who fell, and was
unable to continue the combat."
Affray in Clarke County
"An unfortunate
affray occurred in Clarke county (Mo.) near Waterloo, on Tuesday the 19th ult.,
which originated in settling the partnership concerns of Messrs. M'Kane and
M'Allister, who had been engaged in the business of distilling, and resulted in
the death of the latter, who was shot down by Mr. M'Kane, because of his
attempting to take possession of seven barrels of whiskey, the property of
M'Kane, which had been knocked off to M'Allister at a sheriff's sale at one
dollar per barrel. M'Kane immediately fled, and at the latest dates had not
been taken.
"This unfortunate
affray caused considerable excitement in the neighbourhood, as both the parties
were men with large families depending upon them and stood well in the
community."
I will quote but one
more paragraph, which, by reason of its monstrous absurdity, may be a relief to
these atrocious deeds.
Affair of Honour
"We have just
heard the particulars of a meeting which took place on Six Mile Island, on
Tuesday, between two young bloods of our city: Samuel Thurston, aged fifteen,
and William Hine, aged thirteen years. They were attended by young gentlemen of
the same age. The weapons used on the occasion were a couple of Dickson's best
rifles; the distance, thirty yards. They took one fire, without any damage
being sustained by either party, except the ball of Thurston's gun passing
through the crown of Hine's hat. Through the intercession of the Board of
Honour, the challenge was withdrawn, and the difference amicably
adjusted."
If the reader will
picture to himself the kind of Board of Honour which amicably adjusted the
differences between these two little boys, who in any other part of the world
would have been amicably adjusted on porters' backs, and soundly flogged with
birchen rods, he will be possessed, no doubt, with as strong a sense of its
ludicrous character as that which sets me laughing whenever its image rises up
before me.
Now, I appeal to every
human mind imbued with the commonest of common sense, and the commonest of
common humanity; to all dispassionate, reasoning creatures, of any shade of
opinion; and ask, with these revolting evidences of the state of society which
exists in and about the slave districts of America before them, can they have a
doubt of the real condition of the slave, or can they for a moment make a
compromise between the institution or any of its flagrant fearful features, and
their own consciences? Will they say of any tale of cruelty and horror, however
aggravated in degree, that it is improbable, when they can turn to the public
prints, and, running, read such signs as these, laid before them by the men who
rule the slaves: in their own acts, and under their own hands?
Do we not know that the
worst deformity and ugliness of slavery are at once the cause and the effect of
the reckless licence taken by these free-born outlaws? Do we not know that the
man who has been born and bred among its wrongs; who has seen in his childhood
husbands obliged, at the word of command, to flog their wives; women,
indecently compelled to hold up their own garments that men might lay the
heavier stripes upon their legs, driven and harried by brutal overseers in
their time of travail, and becoming mothers on the field of toil, under the
very lash itself; who has read in youth, and seen his virgins sisters read,
descriptions of runaway men and women, and their disfigured persons, which
could not be published elsewhere, of so much stock upon a farm, or at a show of
beasts:--do we not know that that man, whenever his wrath is kindled up, will
be a brutal savage? Do we not know that as he is a coward in his domestic life,
stalking among his shrinking men and women slaves armed with his heavy whip, so
he will be a coward out of doors, and, carrying cowards' weapons hidden in his
breast, will shoot men down and stab them when he quarrels? And if our reason
did not teach us this and much beyond; if we were such idiots as to close our
eyes to that fine mode of training which rears up such men; should we not know
that they who among their equals stab and pistol in the legislative halls, and
in the counting-house, and on the market-place, and in all the elsewhere peaceful
pursuits of life, must be to their dependants, even though they were free
servants, so many merciless and unrelenting tyrants?
What! shall we declaim
against the ignorant peasantry of Ireland, and mince the matter when these
American taskmasters are in question? Shall we cry shame on the brutality of
those who ham-string cattle: and spare the lights of Freedom upon earth who
notch the ears of men and women, cut pleasant posies in the shrinking flesh,
learn to write with pens of red-hot iron on the human face, rack their poetic
fancies for liveries of mutilation which their slaves shall wear for life and
carry to the grave, break living limbs as did the soldiery who mocked and slew
the Saviour of the world, and set defenceless creatures up for targets? Shall
we whimper over legends of the tortures practised on each other by the Pagan
Indians, and smile upon the cruelties of Christian men? Shall we, so long as
these things last, exult above the scattered remnants of that stately race, and
triumph in the white enjoyment of their broad possessions? Rather, for me,
restore the forest and the Indian village; in lieu of stars and stripes, let
some poor feather flutter in the breeze; replace the streets and squares by
wigwams; and though the death-song of a hundred haughty warriors fill the air,
it will be music to the shriek of one unhappy slave.
On one theme, which is
commonly before our eyes, and in respect of which our national character is
changing fast, let the plain Truth be spoken, and let us not, like dastards,
beat about the bush by hinting at the Spaniard and the fierce Italian. When
knives are drawn by Englishmen in conflict, let it be said and known: "We
owe this change to Republican Slavery. These are the weapons of Freedom. With
sharp points and edges such as these, Liberty in America hews and hacks her
slaves; or, failing that pursuit, her sons devote them to a better use, and
turn them on each other."
THERE are many passages
in this book where I have been at some pains to resist the temptation of
troubling my readers with my own deductions and conclusions: preferring that
they should judge for themselves, from such premises as I have laid before
them. My only object in the outset was, to carry them with me faithfully
wheresoever I went: and that task I have discharged.
But I may be pardoned
if, on such a theme as the general character of the American people, and the
general character of their social system, as presented to a stranger's eyes, I
desire to express my own opinions in a few words, before I bring these volumes
to a close.
They are, by nature,
frank, brave, cordial, hospitable, and affectionate. Cultivation and refinement
seem but to enhance their warmth of heart and ardent enthusiasm; and it is the
possession of these latter qualities in a most remarkable degree which renders
an educated American one of the most endearing and most generous of friends. I
never was so won upon as by this class; never yielded up my full confidence and
esteem so readily and pleasurably as to them; never can make again, in half a
year, so many friends for whom I seem to entertain the regard of half a life.
These qualities are
natural, I implicitly believe, to the whole people. That they are, however,
sadly sapped and blighted in their growth among the mass; and that there are
influences at work which endanger them still more, and give but little present
promise of their healthy restoration, is a truth that ought to be told.
It is an essential part
of every national character to pique itself mightily upon its faults, and to
deduce tokens of its virtue or its wisdom from their very exaggeration. One
great blemish in the popular mind of America, and the prolific parent of an
innumerable brood of evils, is Universal Distrust. Yet the American citizen
plumes himself upon this spirit, even when he is sufficiently dispassionate to
perceive the ruin it works; and will often adduce it, in spite of his own
reason, as an instance of the great sagacity and acuteness of the people, and
their superior shrewdness and independence.
"You carry,"
says the stranger, "this jealousy and distrust into every transaction of
public life. By repelling worthy men from your legislative assemblies, it has
bred up a class of candidates for the suffrage, who, in their every act,
disgrace your Institutions and your people's choice. It has rendered you so
fickle, and so given to change, that your inconstancy has passed into a
proverb; for you no sooner set up an idol firmly than you are sure to pull it
down and dash it into fragments: and this because, directly you reward a
benefactor, or a public servant, you distrust him, merely because he is
rewarded; and immediately apply yourselves to find out, either that you have
been too bountiful in your acknowledgments, or he remiss in his deserts. Any
man who attains a high place among you, from the President downwards, may date
his downfall from that moment; for any printed lie that any notorious villain
pens, although it militate directly against the character and conduct of a
life, appeals at once to your distrust, and is believed. You will strain at a
gnat in the way of trustfulness and confidence, however fairly won and well
deserved; but you will swallow a whole caravan of camels, if they be laden with
unworthy doubts and mean suspicions. Is this well, think you, or likely to
elevate the character of the governors or the governed among you?"
The answer is
invariably the same: "There's freedom of opinion here, you know. Every man
thinks for himself, and we are not to be easily overreached. That's how our
people come to be suspicious."
Another prominent
feature is the love of "smart" dealing: which gilds over many a
swindle and gross breach of trust; many a defalcation, public and private; and
enables many a knave to hold his head up with the best, who well deserves a
halter: though it has not been without its retributive operation, for this
smartness has done more in a few years to impair the public credit, and to
cripple the public resources, than dull honesty, however rash, could have
effected in a century. The merits of a broken speculation, or a bankruptcy, or
of a successful scoundrel, are not gauged by its or his observance of the
golden rule, "Do as you would be done by," but are considered with
reference to their smartness. I recollect, on both occasions of our passing
that ill-fated Cairo on the Mississippi, remarking on the bad effects such
gross deceits must have, when they exploded, in generating a want of confidence
abroad, and discouraging foreign investment: but I was given to understand that
this was a very smart scheme, by which a deal of money had been made: and that
its smartest feature was, that they forgot these things abroad in a very short
time, and speculated again as freely as ever. The following dialogue I have
held a hundred times: "Is it not a very disgraceful circumstance that such
a man as So-and-so should be acquiring a large property by the most infamous
and odious means, and, notwithstanding all the crimes of which he has been
guilty, should be tolerated and abetted by your citizens? He is a public
nuisance, is he not?" "Yes, sir." "A convicted liar?"
"Yes, sir." "He has been kicked, and cuffed, and caned?"
"Yes, sir." "And he is utterly dishonourable, debased, and
profligate?" "Yes, sir." "In the name of wonder, then, what
is his merit?" "Well, sir, he is a smart man."
In like manner, all
kinds of deficient and impolitic usages are referred to the national love of
trade; though, oddly enough, it would be a weighty charge against a foreigner
that he regarded the Americans as a trading people. The love of trade is
assigned as a reason for that comfortless custom, so very prevalent in country
towns, of married persons living in hotels, having no fireside of their own,
and seldom meeting, from early morning until late at night, but at the hasty
public meals. The love of trade is a reason why the literature of America is to
remain for ever unprotected: "For we are a trading people, and don't care
for poetry:" though we do, by the way, profess to be very proud of our
poets: while healthful amusements, cheerful means of recreation, and wholesome
fancies must fade before the stern utilitarian joys of trade.
These three
characteristics are strongly presented at every turn, full in the stranger's
view. But, the foul growth of America has a more tangled root than this; and it
strikes its fibres deep in its licentious Press.
Schools may be erected,
East, West, North, and South; pupils be taught, and masters reared, by scores
upon scores of thousands; colleges may thrive, churches may be crammed,
temperance may be diffused, and advancing knowledge in all other forms walk
through the land with giant strides: but while the newspaper press of America
is in, or near, its present abject state, high moral improvement in that
country is hopeless. Year by year, it must and will go back; year by year, the
tone of public feeling must sink lower down; year by year, the Congress and the
Senate must become of less account before all decent men; and year by year, the
memory of the Great Fathers of the Revolution must be outraged more and more,
in the bad life of their degenerate child.
Among the herd of
journals which are published in the States, there are some, the reader scarcely
need by told, of character and credit. From personal intercourse with
accomplished gentlemen connected with publications of this class, I have
derived both pleasure and profit. But the name of these is Few, and of the
others Legion; and the influence of the good is powerless to counteract the
mortal poison of the bad.
Among the gentry of
America; among the well-informed and moderate; in the learned professions; at
the bar and on the bench: there is, as there can be, but one opinion, in
reference to the vicious character of these infamous journals. It is sometimes
contended--I will not say strangely, for it is natural to seek excuses for such
a disgrace--that their influence is not so great as a visitor would suppose. I
must be pardoned for saying that there is no warrant for this plea, and that
every fact and circumstance tends directly to the opposite conclusion.
When any man, of any
grade of desert in intellect or character, can climb to any public distinction,
no matter what, in America, without first grovelling down upon the earth, and
bending the knee before this monster of depravity; when any private excellence
is safe from its attack; when any social confidence is left unbroken by it, or
any tie of social decency and honour is held in the least regard; when any man
in that Free Country has freedom of opinion, and presumes to think for himself,
and speak for himself, without humble reference to a censorship which, for its
rampant ignorance and base dishonesty, he utterly loathes and despises in his
heart; when those who most acutely feel its infamy, and the reproach it casts
upon the nation, and who most denounce it to each other, dare to set their
heels upon, and crush it openly, in the sight of all men: then I will believe
that its influence is lessening, and men are returning to their manly senses.
But while that Press has its evil eye in every house, and its black hand in
every appointment in the state, from a president to a postman; while, with
ribald slander for its only stock-in-trade, it is the standard literature of an
enormous class, who must find their reading in a newspaper, or they will not
read at all; so long must its odium be upon the country's head, and so long
must the evil it works be plainly visible in the Republic.
To those who are
accustomed to the leading English journals, or to the respectable journals of
the Continent of Europe; to those who are accustomed to anything else in print
and paper; it would be impossible, without an amount of extract for which I
have neither space nor inclination, to convey an adequate idea of this
frightful engine in America. But if any man desire confirmation of my statement
on this head, let him repair to any place in this city of London, where
scattered numbers of these publications are to be found; and there let him form
his own opinion.*
It would be well, there
can be no doubt, for the American people as a whole, if they loved the Real
less, and the Ideal somewhat more. It would be well, if there were greater
encouragement to lightness of heart and gaiety, and a wider cultivation of what
is beautiful, without being eminently and directly useful. But here I think the
general remonstrance, "We are a new country," which is so often
advanced as an excuse for defects which are quite unjustifiable, as being, of
right, only the slow growth of an old one, may be very reasonably urged: and I
yet hope to hear of there being some other national amusement in the United
States besides newspaper politics.
They certainly are not
a humorous people, and their temperament always impressed me as being of a dull
and gloomy character. In shrewdness of remark, and a certain cast-iron
quaintness, the Yankees, or people of New England, unquestionably take the
lead; as they do in most other evidences of intelligence. But in travelling about,
out of the large cities--as I have remarked in former parts of these volumes--I
was quite oppressed by the prevailing seriousness and melancholy air of
business: which was so general and unvarying, that, at every new town I came
to, I seemed to meet the very same people whom I had left behind me at the
last. Such defects as are perceptible in the national manners seem, to me, to
be referable, in a great degree, to this cause: which has generated a dull,
sullen persistence in coarse usages, and rejected the graces of life as
undeserving of attention. There is no doubt that Washington, who was always
most scrupulous and exact on point of ceremony, perceived the tendency towards
this mistake, even in his time, and did his utmost to correct it.
I cannot hold, with
other writers on these subjects, that the prevalence of various forms of
Dissent in America is in any way attributable to the non-existence there of an
Established Church: indeed, I think the temper of the people, if it admitted of
such an Institution being founded amongst them, would lead them to desert it,
as a matter of course, merely because it was established. But, supposing it to
exist, I doubt its probable efficacy in summoning the wandering sheep to one
great fold, simply because of the immense amount of Dissent which prevails at
home; and because I do not find in America any one form of religion with which
we in Europe, or even in England, are unacquainted. Dissenters resort thither
in greater numbers, as other people do, simply because it is a land of resort;
and great settlements of them are founded, because ground can be purchased, and
towns and villages reared, where there were none of the human creation before.
But even the Shakers emigrated from England; our country is not unknown to Mr.
Joseph Smith, the apostle of Mormonism, or to his benighted disciples; I have
beheld religious scenes myself, in some of our populous towns, which can hardly
be surpassed by an American camp-meeting; and I am not aware that any instance
of superstitious imposture on the one hand, and superstitious credulity on the
other, has had its origin in the United States, which we cannot more than
parallel by the precedents of Mrs. Southcote, Mary Tofts the rabbit-breeder, or
even Mr. Thom of Canterbury: which latter case arose some time after the dark
ages had passed away.
The Republican
Institutions of America undoubtedly lead the people to assert their
self-respect and their equality; but a traveller is bound to bear those
Institutions in his mind, and not hastily to resent the near approach of a
class of strangers who, at home, would keep aloof. This characteristic, when it
was tinctured with no foolish pride, and stopped short of no honest service,
never offended me; and I very seldom, if ever, experienced its rude or
unbecoming display. Once or twice it was comically developed, as in the
following case; but this was an amusing incident, and not the rule, or near it.
I wanted a pair of
boots at a certain town, for I had none to travel in, but those with the memorable
cork soles, which were much too hot for the fiery decks of a steamboat. I
therefore sent a message to an artist in boots, importing, with my compliments,
that I should be happy to see him, if he would do me the polite favour to call.
He very kindly returned for answer, that he would "look round" at six
o'clock that evening.
I was lying on the
sofa, with a book and a wine-glass, at about that time, when the door opened,
and a gentleman in a stiff cravat, within a year or two on either side of
thirty, entered, in his hat and gloves; walked up to the looking-glass;
arranged his hair; took off his gloves; slowly produced a measure from the
uttermost depths of his coat pocket; and requested me, in a languid tone, to
"unfix" my straps. I complied, but looked with some curiosity at his
hat, which was still upon his head. It might have been that, or it might have
the heat--but he took it off. Then, he sat himself down on a chair opposite to
me; rested an arm on each knee; and, leaning forward very much, took from the
ground, by a great effort, the specimen of metropolitan workmanship which I had
just pulled off: whistling pleasantly as he did so. He turned it over and over;
surveyed it with a contempt no language can express; and inquired if I wished
him to fix me a boot like that? I courteously replied that, provided the boots
were large enough, I would leave the rest to him; that, if convenient and
practicable, I should not object to their bearing some resemblance to the model
then before him; but that I would be entirely guided by, and would beg to leave
the whole subject to, his judgment and discretion. "You an't partickler
about this scoop in the heel I suppose, then?" says he. "We don't
foller that here." I repeated my last observation. He looked at himself in
the glass again; went closer to it to dash a grain or two of dust out of the
corner of his eye; and settled his cravat. All this time my leg and foot were
in the air. "Nearly ready, sir?" I inquired. "Well, pretty
nigh," he said; "keep steady." I kept as steady as I could, both
in foot and face; and having by this time got the dust out, and found his
pencil-case, he measured me, and made the necessary notes. When he had
finished, he fell into his old attitude, and, taking up the boot again, mused
for some time. "And this," he said at last, "is an English boot,
is it? This is a London boot, eh?" "That, sir," I replied,
"is a London boot." He mused over it again, after the manner of
Hamlet with Yorick's skull; nodded his head, as who should say, "I pity
the Institutions that led to the production of this boot;" rose; put up
his pencil, notes, and paper--glancing at himself in the glass all the
time--put on his hat; drew on his gloves very slowly; and finally walked out.
When he had been gone about a minute, the door reopened, and his hat and his
head reappeared. He looked round the room, and at the boot again, which was
still lying on the floor; appeared thoughtful for a minute, and then said,
"Well, good arternoon." "Good afternoon, sir," said I: and
that was the end of the interview.
There is but one other
head on which I wish to offer a remark; and that has reference to the public
health. In so vast a country, where there are thousands of millions of acres of
land yet unsettled and uncleared, and on every rood of which vegetable
decomposition is annually taking place; where there are so many great rivers,
and such opposite varieties of climate; there cannot fail to be a great amount
of sickness at certain seasons. But I may venture to say, after conversing with
many members of the medical profession in America, that I am not singular in
the opinion that much of the disease which does prevail might be avoided, if a
few common precautions were observed. Greater means of personal cleanliness are
indispensable to this end; the custom of hastily swallowing large quantities of
animal food three times a day, and rushing back to sedentary pursuits after
each meal, must be changed; the gentler sex must go more wisely clad, and take
more healthful exercise; and in the latter clause the males must be included
also. Above all, in public institutions, and throughout the whole of every town
and city, the system of ventilation, and drainage, and removal of impurities
requires to be thoroughly revised. There is no local Legislature in America
which may not study Mr. Chadwick's excellent Report upon the Sanitary Condition
of our Labouring Classes with immense advantage.
---------------------------
I HAVE now arrived at
the close of this book. I have little reason to believe, from certain warnings
I have had since I returned to England, that it will be tenderly or favourably
received by the American people; and, as I have written the Truth in relation
to the mass of those who form their judgments and express their opinions, it
will be seen that I have no desire to court, by any adventitious means, the
popular applause.
It is enough for me to
know that what I have set down in these pages cannot cost me a single friend on
the other side of the Atlantic, who is, in anything, deserving of the name. For
the rest, I put my trust, implicitly, in the spirit in which they have been
conceived and penned; and I can bide my time.
I have made no
reference to my reception, nor have I suffered it to influence me in what I
have written; for, in either case, I should have offered but a sorry
acknowledgment, compared with that I bear within my breast, towards those
partial readers of my former books across the Water, who met me with an open
hand, and not with one that closed upon an iron muzzle.
END OF AMERICAN NOTES.
* NOTE TO THE ORIGINAL
EDITION. -- Or let him refer to an able and perfectly truthful article in The
Foreign Quarterly Review, published in the present month of October; to which
my attention has been attracted, since these sheets have been passing through
the press. He will find some specimens there, by no means remarkable to any man
who has been in America, but sufficiently striking to one who has not.
AT a Public Dinner
given to me on Saturday, the 18th of April, 1868, in the City of New York, by
two hundred representatives of the Press of the United States of America, I
made the following observations among others:--
"So much of my
voice has lately been heard in the land, that I might have been contented with
troubling you no further from my present standing-point, were it not a duty
with which I henceforth charge myself, not only here, but on every suitable
occasion, whatsoever and wheresoever, to express my high and grateful sense of
my second reception in America, and to bear my honest testimony to the national
generosity and magnanimity. Also, to declare how astounded I have been by the
amazing changes I have seen around me on every side,--changes moral, changes
physical, changes in the amount of land subdued and peopled, changes in the
rise of vast new cities, changes in the growth of older cities almost out of
recognition, changes in the graces and amenities of life, changes in the Press,
without whose advancement no advancement can take place anywhere. Nor am I,
believe me, so arrogant as to suppose that in five-and-twenty years there have
been no changes in me, and that I had nothing to learn and no extreme
impressions to correct when I was here first. And this brings me to a point on
which I have, ever since I landed in the United States last November, observed
a strict silence, though sometimes tempted to break it, but in reference to
which I will, with your good leave, take you into my confidence now. Even the
Press, being human, may be sometimes mistaken or misinformed, and I rather
think that I have in one or two rare instances observed its information to be
not strictly accurate with reference to myself. Indeed, I have, now and again,
been more surprised by printed news that I have read of myself, than by any
printed news that I have ever read in my present state of existence. Thus, the
vigour and perseverance with which I have for some months past been collecting
materials for, and hammering away at, a new book on America has much astonished
me; seeing that all that time my declaration has been perfectly well known to
my publishers on both sides of the Atlantic, that no consideration on earth
would induce me to write one. But what I have intended, what I have resolved
upon (and this is the confidence I seek to place in you) is, on my return to
England, in my own person, in my own Journal, to bear, for the behoof of my countrymen,
such testimony to the gigantic changes in this country as I have hinted at
to-night. Also, to record that wherever I have been, in the smallest places
equally with the largest, I have been received with unsurpassable politeness,
delicacy, sweet temper, hospitality, consideration, and with unsurpassable
respect for the privacy daily enforced upon me by the nature of my avocation
here, and the state of my health. This testimony, so long as I live, and so
long as my descendants have any legal right in my books, I shall cause to be
republished, as an appendix to every copy of those two books of mine in which I
have referred to America. And this I will do and cause to be done, not in mere
love and thankfulness, but because I regard it as an act of plain justice and
honour."
I said these words with
the greatest earnestness that I could lay upon them, and I repeat them in print
here with equal earnestness. So long as this book shall last, I hope that they
will form a part of it, and will be fairly read as inseparable from my
experiences and impressions of America.
CHARLES DICKENS.
May, 1868.